Selected quad for the lemma: cause_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
cause_n good_a love_n love_v 4,903 5 6.7044 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A68449 A catholike and ecclesiasticall exposition of the holy Gospell after S. Iohn. Gathered out of all the singuler and approued deuines (which the Lorde hath giuen vnto his Church) by Augustine Marlorate. And translated out of Latin into Englishe by Thomas Timme minister. Seene and allovved according to the order appoynted; Novi Testamenti catholica expositio ecclesiastica. English. Selections Marlorat, Augustin, 1506-1562.; Tymme, Thomas, d. 1620. 1575 (1575) STC 17406; ESTC S114256 780,235 632

There are 33 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

word_n that_o christ_n require_v of_o his_o disciple_n mutual_a love_n but_o othersome_a much_o better_a who_o take_v and_o understande_v the_o love_n of_o christ_n active_o for_o he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o enjoy_v for_o ever_o the_o love_n wherewith_o he_o have_v love_v we_o and_o therefore_o he_o will_v we_o to_o take_v heed_n lest_o we_o deprive_v ourselves_o of_o the_o same_o for_o many_o do_v reject_v the_o grace_n offer_v unto_o they_o and_o many_o cast_v away_o that_o which_o they_o have_v in_o their_o hand_n so_o soon_o therefore_o as_o we_o be_v once_o receive_v into_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n we_o must_v take_v heed_n least_o through_o our_o own_o fault_n we_o fall_v from_o the_o same_o m._n he_o be_v the_o vine_n and_o he_o pour_v his_o nature_n and_o goodness_n into_o the_o branch_n so_o long_o as_o they_o abide_v in_o the_o stock_n that_o they_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o lively_a blood_n and_o juice_n of_o the_o same_o whoso_o abide_v not_o in_o he_o they_o perish_v not_o through_o he_o but_o by_o their_o own_o fault_n c._n notwistanding_n whereas_o some_o infer_v upon_o these_o word_n that_o there_o be_v no_o efficacy_n in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n except_o the_o same_o be_v holpen_v by_o our_o constancy_n it_o be_v but_o vain_a for_o we_o do_v not_o grant_n that_o the_o spirit_n do_v only_o require_v of_o we_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o our_o power_n but_o do_v also_o show_v what_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v that_o if_o so_o be_v we_o lack_v strength_n we_o may_v seek_v for_o the_o same_o from_o he_o euenas_n when_o christ_n exhort_v we_o here_o to_o perseverance_n we_o must_v not_o leave_v to_o our_o own_o industerye_n and_o strength_n but_o we_o must_v pray_v he_o which_o command_v that_o he_o will_v confirm_v we_o in_o his_o love_n 10._o if_o you_o keep_v my_o commandment_n you_o shall_v abide_v in_o my_o love_n even_o as_o i_o have_v keapt_v my_o father_n commandment_n and_o abide_v in_o his_o love_n a._n least_o any_o man_n shall_v abuse_v this_o place_n we_o must_v note_n that_o christ_n say_v not_o if_o you_o keep_v my_o commandment_n you_o shall_v deserve_v my_o love_n but_o you_o shall_v abide_v in_o my_o love_n m._n for_o the_o obedience_n and_o keep_v of_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n wherefore_o we_o be_v love_v but_o rather_o the_o conceruation_n of_o his_o grace_n which_o happen_v even_o to_o the_o unworthy_a he_o do_v not_o therefore_o begin_v to_o love_v we_o love_n merit_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o god_n love_n because_o we_o have_v keep_v his_o commandment_n neither_o have_v he_o choose_v we_o because_o we_o deserve_v the_o same_o but_o he_o have_v both_o love_v and_o choose_v we_o free_o and_o without_o all_o manner_n of_o desert_n on_o our_o part_n that_o we_o may_v abide_v in_o this_o grace_n he_o require_v at_o our_o hand_n that_o we_o keep_v his_o commandment_n c._n for_o this_o be_v the_o best_a manner_n of_o perseverance_n to_o follow_v he_o whether_o he_o call_v us._n 8.1_o rom._n 8.1_o for_o they_o which_o be_v in_o christ_n walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n for_o these_o be_v always_o join_v together_o faith_n which_o apprehend_v the_o free_a love_n of_o christ_n a_o good_a conscience_n and_o newene_n of_o life_n and_o in_o deed_n christ_n do_v not_o reconcile_v the_o faithful_a unto_o the_o father_n that_o they_o may_v do_v what_o they_o list_v but_o to_o the_o end_n he_o guide_v they_o with_o his_o spirit_n may_v keep_v they_o under_o his_o father_n hand_n and_o subjection_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o do_v reject_v the_o love_n of_o christ_n which_o prove_v not_o themselves_o by_o true_a obedience_n to_o be_v his_o disciple_n but_o it_o seem_v a_o very_a straight_o and_o hard_a matter_n that_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v require_v at_o our_o hand_n in_o the_o which_o be_v contain_v the_o exact_v perfection_n of_o righteousenesse_n which_o be_v more_o than_o we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v for_o thereof_o it_o come_v that_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n be_v void_a except_o we_o be_v as_o pure_a as_o angel_n this_o may_v easy_o be_v answer_v ▪_o for_o see_v christ_n speak_v hear_v of_o a_o desire_n to_o lead_v a_o holy_a and_o godly_a life_n he_o do_v not_o exclude_v that_o which_o be_v the_o principal_a point_n in_o his_o doctrine_n namely_o the_o free_a imputation_n of_o righteousness_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o by_o acceptation_n and_o grace_n our_o work_n which_o be_v of_o themselves_o lame_a &_o impure_a deserve_v to_o be_v reject_v be_v pleasant_a unto_o god_n therefore_o the_o faithful_a be_v say_v to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n when_o they_o apply_v their_o wheal_n study_n and_o mind_n to_o keep_v they_o although_o they_o come_v nothing_o near_o the_o mark_n because_o they_o be_v loose_v from_o that_o rigour_n of_o the_o law_n ●_o deu_fw-la 27._o ●6_n gala._n 3_o ●_o where_o it_o be_v say_v curse_a be_v every_o one_o that_o continue_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n contain_v in_o this_o book_n to_o fulfil_v they_o m._n for_o whatsoever_o imperfection_n come_v by_o the_o infirmity_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v free_o forgeven_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o mediation_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n even_o as_o i_o have_v keep_v my_o father_n commandemennt_n c._n as_o we_o be_v elect_v in_o christ_n evenso_fw-la in_o he_o be_v express_v at_o the_o full_a the_o image_n of_o our_o call_n good_a cause_n therefore_o he_o have_v to_o set_v himself_o hear_v before_o his_o disciple_n for_o a_o example_n to_o be_v follow_v to_o the_o imitation_n whereof_o all_o the_o godly_a will_v frame_v themselves_o in_o i_o say_v he_o you_o may_v behold_v the_o very_a same_o which_o he_o require_v of_o you_o for_o you_o see_v how_o true_o i_o be_o addict_v to_o the_o obedience_n of_o my_o father_n and_o in_o the_o same_o i_o will_v continue_v he_z in_o like_a manner_n have_v not_o love_v i_o for_o a_o little_a or_o short_a time_n but_o his_o love_n towards_o i_o abide_v for_o ever_o this_o conformity_n of_o the_o head_n and_o the_o member_n must_v we_o have_v always_o before_o our_o eye_n not_o only_o to_o the_o end_n the_o faithful_a may_v seek_v to_o conform_v themselves_o to_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o that_o they_o may_v trust_v to_o be_v better_o reform_v daily_o by_o his_o spirit_n that_o they_o may_v walk_v in_o newenesse_n of_o life_n to_o the_o end_n r._n therefore_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a example_n of_o life_n the_o which_o every_o one_o must_v follow_v if_o so_o be_v he_o desy_a to_o live_v a_o christian_a man_n life_n the_o godly_a also_o may_v be_v example_n of_o life_n but_o no_o otherwaye_n than_o in_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o follow_v christ_n whereupon_o paul_n set_v himself_o before_o other_o to_o be_v follow_v say_v i_o i_o cor._n 4._o i6_n i_o cor_n xi_o i_o therefore_o i_o exhort_v you_o that_o you_o be_v follower_n of_o i_o and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o expound_v himself_o sa_v be_v you_o follower_n of_o i_o even_o as_o i_o follow_v christ_n for_o such_o a_o example_n whereby_o our_o life_n must_v be_v frame_v must_v be_v perfect_v in_o every_o point_n but_o we_o can_v have_v a_o more_o perfect_v example_n of_o life_n than_o in_o christ_n for_o he_o do_v not_o only_o go_v before_o we_o &_o teach_v we_o with_o his_o voice_n but_o also_o by_o his_o virtue_n in_o we_o through_o faith_n he_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o we_o may_v follow_v his_o example_n otherwise_o we_o be_v most_o weak_a and_o unapte_v to_o do_v the_o least_o good_a work_n 11._o these_o thing_n have_v i_o speak_v unto_o you_o that_o my_o joy_n may_v remain_v in_o you_o and_o that_o your_o joy_n may_v be_v full_a a._n as_o christ_n a_o little_a before_o leave_v his_o peace_n with_o his_o disciple_n put_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o same_o worldly_a peace_n evenso_fw-la now_o he_o offer_v unto_o they_o the_o true_a and_o perfect_v joy_n far_o more_o excelente_v than_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o world_n bu_n he_o speak_v not_o of_o that_o joy_n which_o he_o himself_o have_v in_o himself_o but_o of_o that_o which_o we_o conceive_v of_o he_o by_o faith_n the_o same_o spring_v from_o the_o faith_n which_o all_o they_o that_o be_v justify_v by_o grace_n have_v with_o god_n therefore_o so_o often_o as_o we_o hear_v of_o his_o fatherly_a love_n toward_o we_o let_v we_o know_v that_o we_o have_v great_a occasion_n of_o joy_n insomuch_o that_o with_o quiet_a conscience_n we_o may_v be_v assure_v of_o our_o salvation_n a._n this_o joy_n the_o apostle_n wish_v that_o that_o we_o may_v feel_v
of_o earthly_a thing_n and_o can_v desire_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v against_o god._n but_o christ_n be_v here_o set_v before_o we_o as_o the_o only_a reméedy_a against_o that_o mortal_a sting_n of_o the_o serpent_n who_o be_v therefore_o call_v the_o serpent_n because_o he_o be_v like_a unto_o sinful_a man_n 7.26_o heb._n 7.26_o and_o he_o be_v compare_v to_o a_o serpent_n of_o brass_n because_o he_o be_v pure_a and_o cleanse_v from_o all_o filthiness_n of_o sin_n holy_a innocent_a and_o undefiled_a 2.7_o 1._o pet._n 2.7_o also_o he_o be_v call_v the_o brazen_a serpent_n because_o he_o be_v firm_a and_o a_o sure_a rock_n of_o defence_n for_o all_o such_o as_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o he_o 15._o that_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v life_n everlasting_a m._n thus_o the_o truth_n agree_v with_o the_o figure_n the_o brazen_a serpent_n be_v not_o exalt_v without_o cause_n neither_o for_o itself_o but_o for_o the_o heal_n of_o those_o which_o otherwise_o have_v be_v but_o dead_a even_o so_o christ_n be_v exalt_v by_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o gospel_n 2.3_o ephe._n 2.3_o that_o we_o which_o be_v bear_v by_o nature_n the_o child_n of_o wrath_n may_v be_v cure_v so_o that_o we_o behold_v he_o which_o be_v the_o author_n and_o finisher_n of_o our_o faith_n 12.2_o heb_fw-mi 12.2_o whereupon_o also_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o have_v cleanse_v and_o purify_v his_o church_n 5.26_o ephe._n 5.26_o in_o the_o word_n of_o life_n for_o as_o they_o which_o behold_v the_o serpent_n lift_v uppe_o be_v heal_v from_o perish_v and_o restoor_v to_o life_n even_o so_o they_o which_o believe_v in_o christ_n preach_v shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v eternal_a life_n m._n the_o brazen_a serpent_n be_v a_o remeedye_a only_o against_o corporal_a and_o temporal_a death_n but_o christ_n be_v a_o remeedye_a against_o eternal_a and_o spiritual_a death_n c._n this_o certain_o be_v a_o notable_a report_n of_o faith_n destruction_n faith_n deliver_v from_o eternal_a destruction_n that_o it_o be_v say_v to_o deliver_v we_o from_o everlasting_a death_n and_o destruction_n for_o christ_n go_v plainelye_o about_o to_o express_v and_o declare_v that_o although_o we_o seem_v to_o be_v bear_v to_o death_n yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o have_v most_o certain_a deliveraunce_n from_o the_o same_o offer_v to_o we_o through_o faith_n in_o he_o and_o thus_o death_n life_n our_o meri●s_n obtain_v not_o eternal_a life_n which_o otherwise_o hang_v over_o we_o be_v not_o to_o be_v fear_v furthermore_o if_o eternal_a life_n be_v obtain_v by_o faith_n where_o be_v then_o our_o merit_n where_o be_v our_o work_n who_o can_v attain_v to_o righteousness_n by_o his_o work_n &_o to_o everlasting_a life_n by_o his_o merit_n c._o also_o christ_n use_v the_o general_a word_n all_n both_o to_o call_v all_o man_n to_o the_o participation_n of_o life_n and_o also_o to_o cut_v of_o all_o excuse_n from_o unbeléever_n m._n therefore_o christ_n jesus_n be_v ready_o to_o bestow_v eternal_a life_n upon_o all_o those_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o without_o respect_n of_o personne_n for_o lovinglye_o he_o call_v all_o unto_o he_o bu_n old_a man_n young_a man_n woman_n learned_a unlearned_a poor_a rich_a jew_n and_o gentile_n and_o to_o be_v short_a he_o call_v all_o kind_n of_o man_n which_o labour_n and_o be_v lade_v with_o the_o heavye_a burden_n of_o sin_n that_o he_o may_v refresh_v they_o and_o indewe_v they_o with_o everlasting_a life_n c._o notwithstanding_o let_v we_o here_o note_n and_o consider_v that_o life_n be_v so_o general_o promise_v to_o all_o man_n that_o believe_v in_o christ_n 11.23_o mat_n 11.23_o that_o yet_o faith_n be_v the_o condition_n annex_v to_o the_o promise_n which_o faith_n appertain_v not_o to_o all_o for_o christ_n be_v exhibit_v and_o offer_v unto_o all_o notwithstanding_o 3._o 2._o thess_n 3._o god_n open_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o elect_a only_o that_o they_o may_v seek_v he_o by_o faith_n 16._o for_o so_o god_n love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n that_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v everlasting_a life_n r._n our_o saviour_n christ_n go_v on_o still_o in_o the_o former_a disputation_n still_o more_o plain_o open_v and_o declare_v that_o righteousness_n come_v not_o by_o the_o law_n but_o by_o the_o behold_v of_o the_o serpent_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o therewithal_o show_v the_o first_o cause_n and_o principal_a original_n of_o our_o salvation_n love_n no_o peace_n of_o conscience_n without_o god_n love_n and_o that_o because_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v least_o in_o doubt_n for_o our_o mind_n have_v no_o peaceable_a rest_n or_o quietness_n in_o the_o which_o they_o may_v stay_v themselves_o until_o we_o come_v to_o the_o free_a love_n of_o god_n therefore_o as_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o our_o salvation_n consist_v in_o no_o other_o than_o in_o christ_n so_o we_o must_v see_v whereby_o christ_n be_v unite_v unto_o we_o &_o why_o he_o be_v offer_v to_o we_o to_o be_v our_o saviour_n eternal_a love_n in_o god_n and_o faith_n in_o we_o bringet_n 〈◊〉_d we_o life_n eternal_a both_o these_o thing_n be_v bear_v distinct_o put_v down_o unto_o we_o the_o first_o be_v a_o lively_a faith_n in_o christ_n the_o second_o be_v the_o love_n of_o god_n by_o which_o he_o so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o send_v life_n to_o the_o same_o by_o his_o only_a son_n to_o save_v mankind_n from_o destruction_n and_o this_o order_n be_v diligent_o to_o be_v note_v for_o when_o the_o original_n of_o our_o salvation_n come_v in_o question_n by_o and_o by_o according_a to_o our_o natural_a ambition_n burst_v forth_o devilish_a imagination_n of_o our_o own_o merit_n we_o feign_v that_o god_n be_v therefore_o merciful_a because_o he_o have_v respect_n to_o none_o but_o those_o who_o he_o judge_v worthy_a frustrate_v mercy_n of_o god_n make_v man_n merit_n frustrate_v but_o the_o scripture_n do_v every_o where_n extol_v his_o mere_a and_o simple_a mercy_n which_o clean_o abolish_v all_o merit_n and_o this_o be_v the_o very_a meaning_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o these_o word_n when_o he_o appoint_v the_o cause_n in_o god_n mercy_n m._n therefore_o the_o love_n of_o god_n with_o the_o which_o he_o have_v love_v the_o world_n have_v so_o determine_v that_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v save_v by_o the_o send_n of_o the_o son_n and_o our_o saviour_n do_v slight_o pass_v over_o this_o love_n but_o do_v dilligentlye_o amplyfie_v and_o inculcate_v the_o same_o when_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o send_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n who_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o as_o a_o most_o certain_a and_o undoubted_a pledge_n of_o his_o fatherly_a love_n toward_o us._n r._n whereof_o then_o come_v salvation_n whereof_o come_v justification_n whereof_o come_v the_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n come_v these_o from_o the_o worthiness_n or_o merit_n of_o man_n god_n forbid_v but_o they_o have_v their_o original_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n for_o we_o have_v always_o abide_v so_o much_o as_o we_o can_v in_o our_o sin_n in_o death_n and_o in_o hell_n except_o god_n of_o his_o entire_a love_n with_o the_o which_o he_o love_v we_o be_v as_o yet_o miserable_a sinner_n have_v not_o give_v his_o only_o beget_v son_n for_o us._n hereupon_o the_o apostle_n say_v in_o this_o be_v love_n not_o that_o we_o love_v he_o for_o the_o flesh_n be_v utterlye_o void_a of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n but_o because_o he_o love_v we_o first_o 4.10_o 1._o joh_n 4.10_o and_o send_v his_o son_n to_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v 5.8_o rom._n 5.8_o god_n commend_v or_o declare_v his_o love_n toward_o we_o in_o that_o when_o as_o yet_o we_o be_v miserable_a sinner_n christ_n die_v for_o us._n death_n sin_n bring_v with_o it_o death_n c._n without_o all_o doubt_n where_o sin_n reign_v we_o shall_v find_v nothing_o but_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n which_o bring_v with_o it_o death_n therefore_o it_o be_v only_o mercy_n which_o reconcyle_v we_o unto_o god_n that_o therewithal_o we_o may_v be_v restore_v unto_o life_n if_o any_o man_n demand_n in_o who_o this_o love_n be_v found_v the_o apostle_n paul_n answer_v 1.5_o ephe._n 1.5_o that_o it_o be_v found_v in_o the_o purpose_n of_o his_o will_n notwithstanding_o this_o manner_n of_o speech_n seem_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o many_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n which_o place_n the_o first_o and_o principal_a foundation_n of_o god_n love_n toward_o we_o in_o christ_n and_o do_v show_v that_o without_o he_o we_o be_v displease_v and_o hateful_a unto_o god._n but_o we_o must_v remember_v that_o the_o hide_a and_o secret_a love_n with_o the_o which_o god_n have_v
even_o as_o the_o father_n bid_v i_o so_o i_o speak_v r._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v when_o i_o call_v myself_o the_o well_o of_o life_n the_o quicken_a bread_n the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n i_o speak_v these_o thing_n because_o my_o father_n so_o command_v i_o to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o which_o will_v drink_v which_o will_v be_v fill_v which_o will_v see_v rise_v again_o and_o live_v everlastinglye_o may_v come_v unto_o i_o and_o believe_v in_o i_o a._n for_o these_o thing_n i_o speak_v that_o you_o may_v attain_v to_o everlasting_a salvation_n through_o i_o ❧_o the_o xiij_o chapter_n 1_o before_o the_o feast_n of_o passover_n when_o jesus_n know_v that_o his_o hour_n be_v come_v that_o he_o shall_v depart_v out_o of_o this_o world_n unto_o the_o father_n when_o he_o love_v he_o which_o be_v in_o the_o world_n unto_o the_o end_n he_o love_v they_o before_o the_o feast_n of_o passover_n b._n the_o other_o euangelyste_n in_o this_o place_n bring_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o holy_a supper_n and_o the_o whole_a mystery_n hereof_o be_v ordain_v to_o this_o end_n that_o by_o the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v and_o by_o the_o cup_n which_o we_o bless_v we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o whereby_o also_o the_o lord_n do_v more_o and_o more_o live_v in_o we_o and_o we_o in_o he_o therefore_o see_v saint_n john_n have_v already_o speak_v of_o the_o lord_n word_n concern_v the_o true_a perticipation_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o his_o sixth_o chapter_n he_o omit_v here_o the_o narration_n of_o the_o supper_n for_o the_o right_n of_o the_o eucharist_n begin_v long_o before_o to_o be_v familiar_a and_o well_o know_v to_o all_o christian_n pretermit_v therefore_o those_o thing_n which_o pertain_v to_o the_o eucharist_n c._n and_o many_o other_o thing_n also_o which_o he_o know_v be_v put_v down_o by_o matthew_n and_o the_o rest_n he_o take_v in_o hand_n to_o entreat_v of_o that_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v omit_v as_o of_o this_o stoarie_a concern_v the_o wash_n of_o the_o disciple_n when_o jesus_n know_v that_o his_o hour_n be_v come_v m._n the_o evangelist_n write_v this_o to_o forewarn_v the_o reader_n that_o he_o think_v not_o that_o any_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o shall_v read_v in_o the_o chapter_n follow_v happen_v without_o the_o foresight_n and_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n for_o he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o none_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o suffer_v a._n judas_n very_o the_o disciple_n not_o know_v of_o the_o same_o conspire_v with_o the_o ruler_n and_o high_a priest_n to_o betray_v jesus_n but_o the_o same_o be_v not_o unknowen_a unto_o christ_n whereupon_o it_o be_v say_v hereafter_o and_o jesus_n know_v all_o thing_n that_o shall_v come_v on_o he_o go_v forth_o therefore_o so_o often_o as_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n shall_v practice_v any_o thing_n against_o we_o let_v we_o commit_v all_o thing_n unto_o he_o who_o can_v provide_v for_o we_o and_o our_o matter_n well_o enough_o that_o i_o shall_v depart_v out_o of_o this_o world_n c._n this_o be_v a_o speech_n worthy_a to_o be_v noated_a for_o it_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o know_v his_o death_n to_o be_v a_o passage_n unto_o the_o heavenlye_a kingdom_n of_o god_n wherefore_o if_o he_o make_v haste_n thither_o do_v not_o let_v to_o love_v his_o disciple_n as_o he_o be_v wont_a there_o be_v no_o cause_n now_o why_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o his_o affection_n be_v alter_v and_o now_o see_v he_o be_v the_o first_o béegotten_v among_o the_o dead_a this_o definition_n of_o death_n pertain_v to_o the_o whoale_n body_n of_o the_o church_n because_o it_o be_v a_o passage_n unto_o god_n from_o the_o which_o the_o faithful_a be_v as_o yet_o pilgrim_n m._n therefore_o let_v we_o so_o think_v and_o speak_v of_o our_o death_n 5.4_o 2._o cor._n 5.4_o that_o we_o may_v also_o call_v the_o same_o a_o passage_n out_o of_o this_o world_n unto_o the_o father_n let_v we_o consider_v who_o and_o what_o this_o world_n be_v and_o we_o shall_v desyer_n the_o death_n of_o the_o body_n because_o by_o the_o same_o we_o go_v out_o of_o this_o world_n into_o a_o most_o happy_a estate_n void_a of_o all_o trouble_n sorrow_n affliction_n and_o pain_n it_o make_v very_o much_o to_o the_o purpose_n that_o he_o use_v this_o word_n father_n to_o go_v out_o of_o this_o world_n which_o be_v a_o vale_n of_o misery_n and_o full_a of_o wickedness_n and_o so_o pass_v not_o to_o the_o worse_o but_o unto_o the_o better_o and_o not_o simple_o to_o the_o better_o but_o to_o the_o father_n also_o be_v such_o a_o notable_a benefit_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v afflict_v and_o oppress_v in_o this_o world_n can_v wish_v for_o nothing_o better_a unto_o the_o end_n he_o love_v they_o c._n although_o the_o euaungeliste_n do_v hereafter_o more_o plain_o declare_v to_o what_o end_n christ_n wash_v his_o disciple_n foot_n yet_o notwithstanding_o hear_v he_o beegin_v to_o show_v afore_o hand_n in_o one_o word_n that_o by_o this_o sign_n he_o will_v have_v his_o constant_a and_o everlasting_a love_n declare_v with_o the_o which_o he_o once_o love_v they_o that_o when_o they_o have_v lose_v his_o presence_n and_o company_n yet_o they_o may_v be_v sertain_o sure_a that_o he_o be_v not_o overwhelm_v in_o death_n the_o which_o persuasion_n also_o ought_v now_o to_o clean_o in_o our_o heart_n the_o word_n be_v that_o christ_n have_v love_v his_o disciple_n which_o wear_v in_o the_o world_n wherefore_o although_o we_o seem_v to_o be_v far_o of_o from_o christ_n yet_o notwithstanding_o let_v we_o know_v that_o he_o behould_v we_o because_o he_o love_v his_o that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n for_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o now_o bear_v the_o same_o affection_n towards_o we_o which_o he_o retain_v even_o at_o this_o very_a point_n of_o death_n m._n but_o the_o original_a root_n and_o cause_n be_v in_o christ_n himself_o and_o not_o in_o his_o disciple_n if_o so_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o love_n have_v be_v in_o the_o disciple_n it_o have_v not_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n it_o be_v necessary_a therefore_o that_o the_o same_o rest_n in_o christ_n who_o love_v those_o that_o be_v he_o with_o unspeable_a love_n unto_o the_o end_n cyr._n and_o verilye_o when_o he_o may_v have_v escape_v the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o pain_n of_o the_o cross_n he_o so_o love_v he_o that_o he_o refuse_v not_o to_o dye_v for_o the_o life_n of_o all_o man_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o most_o perfect_v love_v our_o saviour_n christ_n himself_o testify_v this_o be_v my_o commandment_n that_o you_o love_v one_o another_o 15.13_o joh._n 15.13_o even_o as_o i_o have_v love_v you_o great_a love_n can_v no_o man_n have_v than_o this_o that_o a_o man_n shall_v geve_v his_o life_n for_o his_o friend_n 2._o and_o when_o supper_n be_v do_v and_o that_o the_o devil_n have_v now_o put_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o judas_n iscariot_n simons_n son_n to_o betray_v he_o m._n there_o be_v some_o which_o think_v that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v thus_o red_a and_o supper_n be_v prepare_v for_o it_o may_v be_v doubt_v whether_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v after_o supper_n or_o in_o supper_n time_n aug._n it_o be_v very_o likely_a that_o supper_n be_v not_o full_o end_v that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o table_n be_v not_o yet_o take_v away_o see_v it_o follow_v by_o and_o by_o that_o the_o lord_n take_v a_o morsel_n of_o bread_n and_o offer_v the_o same_o to_o judas_n and_o that_o the_o devil_n have_v now_o put_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o judas_n c._n this_o the_o evangelist_n have_v add_v not_o only_o to_o show_v the_o wonderful_a patience_n of_o christ_n who_o voutsafe_v to_o wash_v such_o a_o wicked_a and_o false_a traitor_n foot_n but_o also_o that_o he_o seek_v occasion_n to_o use_v that_o time_n in_o the_o which_o he_o shall_v finish_v the_o last_o act_n of_o his_o life_n béeinge_v never_o unto_o death_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o judas_n go_v about_o to_o betray_v christ_n by_o the_o impulsion_n of_o the_o devil_n he_o do_v it_o to_o express_v the_o cruelty_n and_o hainousenes_n of_o the_o fault_n for_o this_o be_v more_o than_o a_o horrible_a and_o tragical_a fact_n in_o the_o which_o the_o efficacy_n of_o satan_n declare_v itself_o b._n insomuch_o that_o it_o may_v seem_v not_o to_o come_v from_o man_n mind_n c._n it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o man_n commit_v no_o manner_n of_o evell_a whereunto_o the_o devil_n do_v not_o stir_v he_o but_o as_o the_o offence_n be_v more_o detestable_a and_o haynouse_a so_o the_o fury_n of_o
forget_v again_o till_o at_o the_o leangth_n they_o grow_v out_o of_o use_n therefore_o christ_n the_o better_a to_o imprint_v the_o doctrine_n of_o love_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o his_o disciple_n commend_v the_o same_o of_o newness_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o will_v have_v you_o always_o to_o remember_v this_o commandment_n even_o as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o law_n new_o make_v to_o be_v short_a we_o see_v that_o the_o purpose_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o place_n be_v to_o exhort_v his_o disciple_n unto_o love_n least_o at_o any_o time_n they_o shall_v suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o love_n of_o the_o same_o or_o suffer_v the_o doctrine_n thereof_o to_o go_v out_o of_o their_o mind_n and_o how_o necessary_a this_o admonition_fw-la be_v disciple_n love_n command_v to_o the_o disciple_n daily_o experience_n teach_v therefore_o christ_n geve_v unto_o love_n this_o title_n of_o newness_n to_o stryre_n we_o up_o always_o to_o embrace_v the_o same_o a._n and_o for_o this_o cause_n saint_n john_n in_o another_o place_n call_v the_o same_o new_a 2.7_o i_o joh._n 2.7_o that_o you_o love_v together_o c._n love_n be_v extend_v even_o to_o stranger_n and_o foreigner_n because_o all_o be_v of_o one_o flesh_n &_o all_o be_v create_v after_o the_o image_n of_o god_n but_o because_o the_o image_n of_o god_n do_v more_o evident_o shine_v in_o those_o that_o be_v regenerate_v it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o bond_n of_o love_n be_v much_o more_o straight_o among_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n i4_n gala._n 6.20_o i_o ●e_n i._o 22_o i._n joh._n 3._o i4_n even_o as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n exhort_v love_n have_v his_o original_n from_o god_n and_o be_v refer_v unto_o he_o there_o can_v be_v no_o mutual_a affection_n of_o love_n but_o only_o in_o those_o that_o be_v govern_v by_o one_o spirit_n christ_n therefore_o noat_v here_o to_o the_o first_o degree_n of_o love_n man_n love_n extendech_v itself_o to_o all_o man_n but_o we_o note_n also_o that_o as_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n do_v extend_v itself_o to_o the_o whole_a world_n even_o so_o we_o must_v love_v all_o man_n yea_o even_o those_o which_o do_v hate_v we_o that_o we_o may_v be_v the_o child_n of_o our_o heavenly_a father_n which_o suffer_v his_o son_n to_o shine_v upon_o the_o good_a and_o en_fw-fr the_fw-fr evyll_n 35._o in_o this_o shall_v all_o man_n know_v that_o you_o be_v my_o disciple_n if_o you_o have_v love_v one_o to_o another_o c._n christ_n confirm_v again_o that_o which_o he_o have_v speak_v before_o that_o they_o be_v teach_v in_o vain_a in_o his_o school_n which_o love_v not_o mutual_o among_o themselves_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v not_o only_a yourselves_o shall_v know_v that_o you_o be_v my_o disciple_n but_o your_o profession_n also_o shall_v be_v prove_v true_a before_o other_o bu_n the_o disciple_n of_o other_o master_n be_v know_v by_o their_o titelle_n by_o their_o apparel_n and_o by_o diverse_a other_o note_n r._n the_o disciple_n of_o antichriste_n be_v know_v by_o their_o round_v and_o shave_v by_o their_o disguise_a apparel_n and_o by_o their_o external_a ceremony_n the_o disciple_n of_o moses_n be_v know_v by_o circumcision_n by_o their_o holy_a and_o sabbath_n day_n and_o by_o their_o sacrifice_n disciple_n love_n be_v the_o badge_n of_o christ_n disciple_n but_o all_o man_n in_o the_o whoale_n world_n shall_v know_v by_o one_o note_n and_o badge_n that_o you_o be_v my_o very_a and_o true_a disciple_n if_o so_o be_v you_o retain_v such_o love_n among_o you_o as_o i_o show_v unto_o you_o therefore_o see_v christ_n have_v prescribe_v this_o to_o be_v the_o only_a and_o sertaine_a note_n to_o know_v his_o discipl_n by_o be_v they_o not_o fool_n and_o mad_a man_n who_o forsake_v so_o plain_a and_o absolute_a a_o commandment_n seek_v other_o note_n for_o there_o be_v some_o that_o think_v they_o shall_v be_v true_a christian_n if_o so_o be_v they_o can_v creep_v into_o a_o monk_n cool_a if_o so_o be_v they_o build_v temple_n and_o erect_v altar_n come_v to_o mass_n and_o do_v observe_v such_o like_a tradition_n of_o man_n therefore_o see_v christ_n discern_v his_o disciple_n by_o love_n from_o other_o disciple_n they_o weary_v themselves_o in_o vain_a who_o forsake_v love_n forge_n unto_o themselves_o new_a worship_n the_o which_o vanity_n be_v to_o be_v see_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o papacy_n and_o it_o be_v not_o superfluous_a that_o christ_n stand_v so_o much_o upon_o this_o point_n for_o self-love_n do_v so_o rule_v we_o for_o the_o most_o part_n that_o true_a love_n be_v clean_o banish_v away_o wherefore_o whosoever_o desier_v to_o be_v a_o true_a disciple_n of_o christ_n let_v he_o frame_v and_o direct_v his_o whoale_n life_n to_o love_v his_o brother_n and_o daily_o practice_v the_o same_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o cause_n why_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n truth_n shall_v by_o this_o place_n extenuate_v the_o free_a justification_n which_o come_v by_o faith_n for_o we_o ourselves_o do_v acknowledge_v and_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v no_o faith_n without_o love_n but_o we_o know_v that_o love_n spring_v from_o faith_n for_o the_o which_o cause_n the_o apostle_n paul_n commend_v to_o the_o church_n of_o galatia_n faith_n which_o work_v through_o love_n 5.6_o gala._n 5.6_o 36._o simon_n peter_n say_v unto_o he_o lord_n whether_o goeste_n thou_o jesus_n answer_v he_o whether_o i_o go_v thou_o can_v not_o follow_v i_o now_o but_o thou_o shall_v follow_v i_o afterward_o m._n again_o the_o love_n of_o simon_n towards_o the_o lord_n bewray_v itself_o he_o be_v very_o loath_a to_o be_v separate_v from_o he_o who_o he_o so_o entire_o love_v be_v ready_a to_o follow_v he_o whether_o soever_o he_o go_v therefore_o when_o he_o hear_v the_o lord_n say_v whether_o i_o go_v thither_o you_o can_v come_v with_o a_o trouble_a mind_n he_o demand_v say_v lord_n whether_o go_v thou_o c._n whereby_o it_o appear_v how_o great_a the_o rudeness_n of_o peter_n be_v who_o be_v so_o oftentimes_o admonish_v of_o the_o death_n and_o departure_n of_o christ_n be_v now_o trouble_v as_o if_o he_o have_v never_o hear_v any_o whit_n of_o the_o same_o howebéeit_n in_o this_o we_o be_v to_o like_v unto_o he_o for_o we_o hear_v dayelye_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n all_o thing_n apt_a and_o meet_a for_o this_o life_n and_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v but_o when_o we_o come_v unto_o the_o matter_n we_o be_v no_o less_o astonish_v than_o novice_n which_o never_o hear_v of_o the_o same_o m._n péete_a make_v not_o answer_v to_o those_o thing_n concern_v mutual_a love_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v command_v but_o leave_v that_o demand_v whether_o christ_n go_v c._n by_o which_o word_n he_o declare_v that_o he_o have_v to_o great_a a_o desyer_n of_o the_o carnal_a presence_n of_o christ_n for_o he_o think_v this_o very_a unméete_a that_o christ_n shall_v go_v to_o another_o place_n and_o he_o be_v leave_v behind_o whether_o i_o go_v thou_o can_v not_o follow_v i_o now_o he_o more_o plain_o utter_v that_o which_o he_o have_v speak_v before_o whether_o i_o go_v thither_o can_v you_o not_o come_v c._n and_o withal_o he_o bridle_v the_o importunate_a desire_n of_o péete_a and_o he_o speak_v precise_o as_o it_o become_v a_o master_n notwithstanding_o straight_o after_o he_o mittigate_v the_o sharpness_n of_o his_o word_n teach_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v separate_v from_o they_o but_o for_o a_o short_a time_n m._n hear_v we_o must_v note_n that_o there_o be_v certain_a time_n and_o momente_n appoint_v of_o god_n to_o every_o faithful_a man_n in_o the_o which_o they_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o life_n may_v follow_v their_o lord_n before_o the_o which_o time_n noane_n may_v follow_v he_o peter_n in_o deed_n have_v his_o time_n come_v to_o follow_v the_o lord_n as_o here_o also_o it_o be_v say_v but_o he_o have_v his_o moment_n and_o appoint_a time_n of_o the_o which_o mention_v be_v make_v in_o the_o eyghtéenth_fw-mi verse_n of_o the_o one_o &_o twenty_o chapter_n follow_v c._n in_o this_o place_n therefore_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o submit_v our_o prayer_n unto_o god_n lest_o they_o pass_v their_o bound_n the_o which_o if_o they_o do_v we_o must_v suffer_v they_o to_o be_v restrain_v with_o this_o bridle_n moreover_o lest_o we_o shall_v faint_v or_o be_v discourage_v let_v we_o remember_v the_o consolation_n which_o straight_o after_o he_o add_v promise_v that_o we_o shall_v one_o day_n come_v unto_o he_o for_o he_o mean_v that_o péete_a as_n yet_o be_v not_o meet_v to_o bear_v his_o cross_n but_o as_o a_o green_a and_o untimely_a plant_n yet_o notwithstanding_o that_o in_o continuance_n of_o time_n he_o shall_v be_v make_v apt_a for_o the_o same_o wherefore_o we_o must_v pray_v unto_o god_n that_o he_o
of_o our_o life_n but_o whereas_o the_o arian_n have_v in_o time_n pass_v abuse_v this_o testimony_n to_o prove_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n by_o participation_n only_o and_o grace_n their_o cavil_n may_v easy_o be_v confute_v for_o christ_n do_v not_o simple_o defend_v his_o eternal_a essence_n but_o commend_v that_o divine_a power_n which_o be_v reveal_v in_o he_o for_o as_o the_o father_n leave_v all_o fullness_n of_o goodness_n in_o his_o son_n so_o in_o like_a manner_n his_o son_n have_v pour_v himself_o whole_o into_o us._n 21._o he_o that_o have_v my_o commandment_n and_o keep_v they_o the_o same_o be_v he_o that_o love_v i_o and_o he_o that_o love_v i_o shall_v be_v love_v of_o my_o father_n and_o i_o will_v love_v he_o and_o will_v show_v my_o own_o self_n unto_o he_o bu_n hear_v the_o lord_n repeat_v that_o again_o which_o he_o have_v otherwise_o propound_v before_o say_v if_o you_o love_v i_o keep_v my_o commandment_n c_z and_o again_o he_o exhort_v the_o faithful_a and_o teach_v that_o the_o true_a proof_n of_o their_o love_n towards_o he_o consist_v in_o this_o that_o they_o observe_v and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n of_o the_o which_o matter_n he_o so_o often_o time_n admonish_v his_o disciple_n lest_o they_o shall_v swerve_v from_o the_o same_o because_o we_o be_v more_o prone_a to_o nothing_o than_o to_o carnal_a affection_n insomuch_o that_o under_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n we_o love_v somewhat_o beside_o christ_n to_o the_o which_o effect_n pertain_v this_o say_n of_o saint_n paul_n although_o we_o have_v know_v christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n 16_o 2_z cor._n 5_o 16_o now_o yet_o henceforth_o know_v we_o he_o so_o no_o more_o therefore_o if_o any_o man_n be_v in_o christ_n he_o be_v a_o new_a creature_n m._n he_o say_v not_o simple_o if_o any_o man_n keep_v my_o commandment_n but_o he_o say_v he_o that_o have_v my_o commandment_n and_o keep_v they_o c._n and_o to_o have_v the_o commandment_n signify_v to_o be_v right_o instruct_v in_o they_o to_o frame_v himself_o &_o his_o life_n unto_o they_o bu_n and_o by_o the_o commandment_n he_o understand_v faith_n and_o love_n a._n for_o this_o be_v his_o commandment_n that_o we_o believe_v his_o name_n 3.23_o i._o joh_n 3.23_o and_o love_v one_o another_o and_o then_o he_o add_v the_o reward_n or_o fruit_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o perseveraunce_n in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n by_o which_o he_o encourage_v those_o that_o run_v well_o to_o go_v forward_o and_o he_o that_o love_v i_o shall_v be_v love_v bu_n to_o belove_a of_o the_o father_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o friendship_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n and_o to_o be_v preserve_v and_o defend_v by_o god_n m._n but_o hear_v it_o may_v be_v demand_v how_o christ_n say_v that_o he_o be_v love_v of_o the_o father_n which_o love_v he_o as_o though_o we_o must_v first_o love_v he_o before_o we_o can_v be_v love_v of_o the_o father_n c._n objection_n for_o christ_n speak_v as_o though_o man_n may_v prevent_v he_o with_o their_o love_n the_o which_o notwithstanding_o be_v very_o absurd_a i0_n rom_n 5_o i0_n for_o at_o such_o time_n as_o we_o be_v his_o enemy_n he_o reconcile_v we_o to_o himself_o also_o s._n john_n say_v in_o this_o be_v love_n not_o that_o we_o love_v god_n but_o in_o that_o he_o love_v us._n i0_n i_o joh_n 4_o i0_n but_o here_o be_v no_o controversy_n concern_v the_o cause_n or_o the_o effect_n terefore_o it_o be_v gather_v amiss_o that_o the_o love_n wherewith_o we_o love_v christ_n must_v needs_o go_v before_o that_o love_n which_o god_n bear_v unto_o us._n for_o this_o only_o be_v the_o purpose_n of_o christ_n to_o show_v that_o all_o they_o shall_v be_v bless_v which_o love_v he_o because_o they_o shall_v be_v love_v of_o the_o father_n in_o like_a manner_n again_o not_o that_o god_n begin_v then_o to_o love_v they_o but_o because_o they_o have_v the_o testimony_n of_o his_o fatherly_a love_n write_v in_o their_o heart_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n pertain_v also_o that_o which_o follow_v in_o the_o next_o member_n where_o he_o say_v and_o will_v show_v my_o own_o self_n unto_o he_o c._n knowledge_n very_o go_v before_o love_n but_o this_o be_v the_o purpose_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o will_v geve_v unto_o the_o true_a imbracer_n of_o his_o doctrine_n strength_n to_o profit_n daily_o in_o the_o faith_n that_o be_v to_o say_v i_o will_v bring_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o shall_v come_v near_o and_o more_o familliarlye_o unto_o i_o bv_o i_o will_v increase_v in_o they_o my_o gift_n that_o from_o thence_o forth_o they_o know_v more_o right_o and_o ful_o the_o misterye_n of_o god_n kingdom_n may_v be_v join_v at_o the_o last_o by_o the_o same_o perfect_a faith_n unto_o i_o and_o may_v also_o enjoy_v i_o to_o their_o soul_n health_n for_o faith_n and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n have_v their_o degree_n which_o increase_v more_o and_o more_o till_o they_o grow_v unto_o the_o full_a measure_n c._n hereby_o we_o may_v perceyve_v that_o the_o fruit_n of_o godliness_n be_v the_o go_v forward_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n for_o he_o which_o promise_v to_o geve_v unto_o he_o that_o have_v reject_v hypocrite_n make_v all_o to_o profit_v in_o the_o faith_n who_o unfainedlye_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n frame_v themselves_o whole_o unto_o the_o obedience_n thereof_o and_o hereupon_o it_o come_v that_o many_o go_v backward_o we_o do_v see_v scarce_o the_o ten_o man_n to_o go_v forewarde_n in_o his_o right_a course_n because_o the_o great_a part_n be_v unworthy_a to_o behold_v christ_n also_o we_o must_v note_n that_o more_o ample_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n be_v here_o set_v forth_o as_o a_o singular_a reward_n of_o our_o love_n to_o christ_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v a_o unspeakable_a treasure_n 22._o judas_n say_v unto_o he_o not_o judas_n iscariot_n lord_n what_o be_v do_v that_o thou_o will_v show_v thyself_o unto_o we_o and_o not_o unto_o the_o world_n b._n because_o the_o disciple_n have_v not_o receyve_v as_o yet_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n they_o understand_v little_a or_o nothing_o of_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o lord_n speak_v whereupon_o judas_n here_o demand_v a_o question_n no_o more_o to_o the_o purpose_n than_o thomas_n and_o philip_n have_v do_v before_o the_o lord_n have_v show_v unto_o they_o that_o his_o departure_n shall_v profit_v they_o more_o than_o his_o carnal_a presence_n and_o that_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n of_o sorrow_n but_o rather_o occasion_n offer_v they_o diligent_o to_o observe_v and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n now_o judas_n but_o not_o judas_n iscariot_n the_o traitor_n but_o judas_n who_o sir_n name_n be_v thaddeus_n who_o epistle_n also_o be_v call_v the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n jude_n as_o know_v none_o of_o these_o thing_n say_v lord_n what_o be_v do_v c._n it_o seem_v unto_o he_o very_o unméete_a that_o christ_n which_o be_v and_o be_v the_o son_n of_o righteousness_n by_o who_o all_o the_o world_n ought_v to_o be_v illumine_v shall_v lyghten_v only_o a_o few_o and_o not_o spread_v forth_o his_o beam_n upon_o all_o bu_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v how_o may_v it_o be_v see_v thou_o be_v now_o know_v unto_o all_o man_n that_o thou_o shall_v manifest_v thyself_o only_o unto_o we_o and_o not_o to_o the_o world_n r._n be_v not_o we_o also_o in_o the_o world_n be_v not_o we_o a_o part_n of_o the_o world_n wherefore_o if_o thou_o manifest_v thyself_o unto_o we_o be_v thou_o not_o also_o manifest_a to_o the_o world_n 23._o jesus_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o he_o if_o a_o man_n love_v i_o he_o will_v keep_v my_o say_n and_o my_o father_n will_v love_v he_o and_o we_o will_v come_v unto_o he_o and_o dwell_n with_o he_o c._n the_o answer_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o explicate_v the_o whoale_n question_n for_o that_o there_o be_v no_o mention_v in_o the_o same_o of_o the_o first_o cause_n why_o christ_n show_v himself_o to_o a_o few_o do_v hide_v himself_o from_o the_o great_a number_n of_o man_n for_o at_o the_o first_o he_o find_v all_o alike_o that_o be_v to_o say_v quite_o go_v astraye_n from_o he_o wherefore_o he_o can_v choose_v none_o which_o love_v he_o but_o the_o choose_v some_o out_o from_o among_o his_o enemy_n who_o heart_n he_o may_v bend_v to_o love_v he_o but_o he_o think_v it_o not_o good_a at_o this_o time_n to_o touch_v that_o difference_n which_o be_v far_o from_o the_o purpose_n his_o purpose_n be_v to_o exhort_v his_o disciple_n to_o the_o earnest_a desire_n of_o godliness_n that_o they_o may_v profit_v more_o and_o more_o in_o the_o faith_n therefore_o he_o think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o his_o disciple_n and_o the_o
peace_n of_o christ_n be_v benediction_n salvation_n justification_n prosperity_n health_n peace_n of_o conscience_n constancy_n in_o adversity_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n itself_o pacefy_v and_o confirm_v our_o heart_n m._n hereupon_o the_o bestower_n of_o so_o great_a a_o benefit_n ●●_o ecay_n 9_o ●●_o be_v call_v the_o prince_n of_o peace_n and_o they_o which_o enjoy_v this_o peace_n bu_n howsoever_o satan_n do_v rage_n and_o the_o world_n stir_n yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o shall_v be_v in_o safety_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o garboil_n m._n of_o this_o peace_n the_o apostle_n speak_v when_o he_o say_v we_o be_v iustefy_v by_o faith_n 4.7_o rom_n 5.1_o phil_n 4.7_o have_v peace_n with_o god_n through_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n a._n and_o in_o another_o place_n the_o peace_n of_o god_n which_o pass_v all_o understanding_n keep_v your_o heart_n and_o mind_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n this_o peace_n the_o world_n can_v neither_o give_v nor_o take_v away_o let_v not_o your_o heart_n be_v greeve_v c._n again_o he_o seek_v to_o take_v from_o they_o that_o grief_n which_o his_o disciple_n have_v conceyve_v of_o his_o departure_n m._n for_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v greeve_v or_o fear_v which_o be_v consecrate_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o guard_v and_o protect_v by_o the_o high_a again_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o hear●_n cause_v god_n cause_n often_o time_n to_o be_v forsake_v whereas_o a_o stout_a and_o invincible_a mind_n i●_n apt_a for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o constant_o serve_v he_o 28._o you_o have_v hear_v how_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o i_o go_v away_o and_o come_v again_o unto_o you_o if_o you_o love_v i_o you_o will_v very_o rejoice_v because_o i_o say_v i_o go_v unto_o the_o father_n for_o the_o father_n be_v great_a than_o i_o c._n he_o deny_v that_o they_o have_v any_o cause_n to_o fear_n because_o they_o want_v only_o his_o corporal_a presence_n have_v nevertheless_o his_o true_a presence_n by_o the_o spirit_n bu_n as_o if_o christ_n shall_v have_v say_v you_o understande_v that_o i_o go_v away_o and_o why_o i_o go_v away_o namely_o for_o your_o salvation_n and_o that_o by_o my_o death_n and_o departure_n i_o will_v neither_o forsake_v you_o nor_o neglect_v you_o for_o i_o will_v come_v unto_o you_o by_o my_o resurrection_n show_v myself_o unto_o you_o a_o live_v again_o and_o although_o then_o i_o shall_v be_v with_o you_o only_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o day_n and_o shall_v straight_o after_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n yet_o notwithstanding_o i_o will_v send_v from_o thence_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o who_o i_o will_v abide_v even_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o you_o so_o that_o you_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o fear_v that_o i_o will_v leave_v you_o comfortelesse_a c._n with_o this_o kind_n of_o presence_n let_v we_o learn_v to_o hold_n ourselves_o content_v and_o let_v we_o not_o follow_v the_o flesh_n which_o always_o ty_v god_n to_o her_o external_a imagination_n if_o you_o love_v i_o you_o will_v very_o rejoice_v r._n carnal_a love_n take_v it_o very_o gréevouslye_o that_o a_o love_a friend_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o but_o spiritual_a love_n be_v otherwise_o affect_v c._n no_o doubt_v the_o disciple_n love_v christ_n but_o otherwise_o than_o become_v they_o for_o they_o be_v somewhat_o carnal_a insomuch_o that_o they_o can_v not_o abide_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v take_v from_o they_o whereas_o if_o they_o have_v love_v he_o spiritual_o they_o will_v have_v desire_v nothing_o more_o than_o his_o return_n to_o the_o father_n for_o the_o father_n be_v great_a than_o j._n c._n this_o place_n have_v be_v diverselye_o wrest_v the_o arian_n to_o prove_v christ_n to_o be_v a_o certain_a secondary_a god_n object_v that_o he_o be_v less_o than_o the_o father_n the_o ancient_a father_n to_o cut_v of_o all_o occasion_n of_o this_o cavil_n say_v that_o this_o aught_o to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o human_a nature_n but_o as_o the_o arian_n wicked_o abuse_v this_o testimony_n even_o so_o the_o answer_n and_o solution_n of_o the_o father_n be_v neither_o true_a nor_o agree_v to_o the_o purpose_n of_o christ_n for_o christ_n speak_v here_o neither_o of_o his_o humane_a nature_n nor_o yet_o of_o his_o eternal_a devinytie_n but_o according_a to_o our_o weak_a capascity_n he_o make_v himself_o a_o mean_a between_o we_o and_o god_n and_o because_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o reach_v unto_o the_o hight_v of_o god_n christ_n descend_v unto_o we_o that_o he_o may_v lift_v we_o up_o unto_o the_o same_o you_o shall_v rejoice_v say_v he_o for_o that_o i_o return_v to_o the_o father_n because_o this_o be_v the_o last_o mark_n where_o unto_o you_o ought_v to_o tend_v he_o do_v not_o show_v in_o those_o word_n what_o he_o differ_v from_o the_o fathere_n but_o wherefore_o he_o descend_v unto_o we_o namely_o to_o unite_v we_o unto_o god_n until_o we_o be_v come_v unto_o this_o we_o stand_v as_o it_o werein_o a_o race_n we_o also_o imagine_v but_o a_o half_a and_o tear_a christ_n except_o he_o lead_v we_o unto_o god_n like_o unto_o this_o be_v that_o place_n of_o paul_n where_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n have_v deliver_v up_o his_o kingdom_n to_o god_n the_o father_n that_o god_n may_v be_v all_o in_o all_o christ_n very_o reign_v not_o only_o in_o humane_a nature_n but_o also_o as_o he_o be_v manifest_v god_n in_o the_o flesh_n how_o then_o shall_v he_o leave_v his_o kingdom_n sure_o thus_o because_o the_o divinitye_n which_o we_o may_v now_o behold_v only_o in_o the_o face_n of_o christ_n shall_v then_o be_v open_o see_v in_o itself_o this_o be_v only_o the_o difference_n for_o that_o paul_n in_o that_o place_n describe_v the_o last_o perfection_n of_o the_o divine_a glory_n and_o brightness_n who_o beam_n begin_v to_o shine_v so_o soon_o as_o christ_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n but_o to_o the_o end_n this_o mistress_n may_v more_o evident_o appear_v we_o must_v speak_v yet_o more_o gross_o christ_n compare_v not_o here_o his_o father_n divinity_n with_o his_o neither_o do_v he_o compare_v his_o human_a nature_n with_o the_o divine_a escence_n of_o the_o father_n but_o rather_o the_o present_a state_n with_o the_o heavenlye_a glory_n into_o the_o which_o he_o be_v short_o after_o to_o be_v receyvid_a as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v you_o desire_v to_o have_v i_o still_o in_o the_o world_n but_o it_o be_v better_a for_o i_o that_o i_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n b._n for_o his_o purpose_n be_v to_o give_v they_o to_o understande_v that_o god_n the_o father_n be_v infinite_o great_a than_o he_o that_o be_v that_o he_o shall_v enjoy_v with_o he_o the_o most_o excellent_a felycity_n where_o as_o he_o have_v live_v here_o in_o misery_n and_o calamitye_n r._n for_o by_o death_n he_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o father_n c._n therefore_o let_v we_o learn_v so_o to_o behold_v christ_n aba●ed_v in_o the_o flesh_n that_o he_o may_v bring_v we_o to_o the_o well_o of_o bless_a immortality_n for_o he_o be_v not_o make_v our_o captain_n and_o guide_n to_o lead_v we_o only_o to_o the_o spear_n of_o the_o moon_n or_o son_n but_o to_o make_v we_o one_o with_o god_n the_o father_n 29._o and_o now_o have_v i_o show_v you_o before_o it_o come_v that_o when_o it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v you_o may_v believe_v m._n what_o say_v he_o all_o those_o thing_n very_o which_o he_o have_v speak_v concern_v the_o comforter_n of_o the_o true_a felicity_n which_o they_o shall_v have_v by_o he_o and_o of_o the_o unspeakable_a power_n by_o which_o they_o shall_v do_v great_a work_n than_o the_o lord_n himself_o have_v do_v c._n it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o disciple_n shall_v be_v oftetnimes_o admonish_v concern_v this_o matter_n because_o it_o be_v a_o mystery_n far_o surmount_v the_o capacity_n of_o man_n and_o he_o say_v that_o he_o foreshow_v what_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o when_o it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v they_o may_v believe_v for_o this_o be_v a_o profitable_a confirmation_n of_o their_o faith_n when_o they_o shall_v call_v to_o mind_v the_o prophecy_n of_o christ_n and_o shall_v see_v that_o with_o their_o eye_n fulfil_v which_o they_o have_v hear_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n before_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v r._n i_o know_v that_o you_o do_v not_o now_o enjoy_v these_o thing_n of_o the_o which_o i_o speak_v b._n notwithstanding_o i_o think_v good_a to_o foreshewe_v you_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o shall_v happen_v unto_o you_o after_o my_o departure_n and_o which_o shall_v profit_v you_o much_o more_o than_o my_o carnal_a presence_n have_v do_v that_o when_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v you_o may_v the_o more_o firm_o believe_v that_o i_o be_o christ_n the_o savioure_n of_o the_o world_n c._n
in_o our_o heart_n say_v let_v the_o peace_n of_o god_n have_v the_o victory_n in_o your_o heart_n 3.15_o colo._n 3.15_o and_o in_o another_o place_n the_o peace_n of_o god_n which_o pass_v all_o understand_v keep_v your_o heart_n and_o mind_n through_o christ_n jesus_n 4.7_o phili._n 4.7_o c._n and_o there_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o joy_n of_o christ_n and_o our_o joy_n in_o diverse_a respect_n that_o be_v the_o joy_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v give_v of_o he_o unto_o we_o for_o he_o be_v the_o author_n and_o cause_n of_o the_o same_o 53.5_o esai_n 53.5_o the_o cause_n of_o our_o joy_n for_o that_o we_o be_v deliver_v from_o sin_n and_o death_n the_o chastisement_n of_o our_o peace_n be_v upon_o he_o and_o he_o be_v the_o authore_fw-la because_o by_o his_o spirit_n he_o take_v fear_n and_o sorrow_n out_o of_o our_o heart_n whereof_o come_v this_o exceed_a joy_n our_o joy_n be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o another_o respect_n because_o we_o enjoy_v he_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v give_v unto_o us._n us._n joy_n in_o christ_n and_o in_o us._n now_o when_o our_o saviour_n christ_n pronounce_v that_o he_o therefore_o speak_v these_o thing_n that_o his_o disciple_n may_v have_v joy_n we_o gather_v that_o whosoever_o do_v true_o profit_v by_o this_o sermone_fw-la shall_v have_v matter_n whereby_o to_o quiet_v themselves_o and_o that_o your_o joy_n may_v be_v full_a bu_n he_o mean_v the_o most_o perfect_a joy_n the_o which_o want_v nothing_o so_o that_o christ_n promise_v unto_o his_o disciple_n joy_n and_o the_o fullness_n of_o all_o joy_n c._n not_o that_o the_o faithful_a shall_v be_v free_a from_o all_o heaviness_n and_o sorrow_n but_o because_o they_o shall_v have_v exceed_a cause_n of_o joy_n in_o such_o wise_a that_o no_o fear_n care_n and_o sorrow_n shall_v overwhelm_v they_o for_o they_o to_o who_o it_o be_v give_v to_o joy_n and_o rejoice_v in_o christ_n shall_v be_v exceed_a joyful_a and_o merry_a whether_o it_o be_v in_o life_n or_o in_o death_n in_o prosperity_n or_o in_o misery_n notwithstanding_o there_o be_v some_o which_o refer_v this_o joy_n in_o the_o second_o place_n to_o the_o fruition_n of_o eternal_a life_n othersome_a say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n these_o thing_n have_v i_o speak_v unto_o you_o that_o my_o joy_n may_v be_v in_o you_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o you_o may_v only_o rejoice_v in_o these_o thing_n in_o the_o which_o i_o rejoice_v for_o so_o you_o shall_v be_v strong_a to_o fight_v and_o upon_o hope_n of_o save_v man_n you_o shall_v willing_o suffer_v peril_n rejoice_v not_o a_o little_a because_o the_o will_n of_o the_o father_n who_o will_v have_v all_o man_n come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n to_o the_o uttermost_a of_o my_o power_n shall_v be_v fulfil_v this_o joy_n therefore_o have_v i_o choose_v this_o also_o if_o you_o shall_v have_v you_o shall_v have_v sincere_a and_o perfect_a joy._n a._n but_o the_o first_o exposition_n be_v best_a to_o to_o like_v 12._o this_o be_v my_o commandment_n that_o you_o love_v together_o as_o i_o have_v love_v you_o m._n because_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o keep_v of_o his_o commandment_n he_o repeat_v by_o occasion_n his_o commandment_n and_o more_o large_o speak_v of_o the_o usinge_n of_o mutual_a love_n of_o the_o which_o also_o he_o speak_v a_o little_a before_o c_o for_o see_v it_o be_v meet_v to_o direct_v our_o life_n according_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n we_o must_v first_o of_o all_o consider_v what_o he_o will_v and_o command_v to_o be_v do_v and_o he_o say_v that_o above_o all_o thing_n he_o delight_v to_o have_v mutual_a love_n among_o the_o faithful_a by_o order_n we_o must_v have_v first_o the_o love_n and_o reverence_n of_o god_n but_o because_o the_o true_a probation_n thereof_o be_v love_n towards_o our_o neighbour_n he_o specialle_v make_v mention_n of_o the_o same_o bu_n as_o if_o christ_n shall_v say_v some_o command_n one_o thing_n and_o some_o another_o and_o there_o be_v neither_o form_n nor_o end_n of_o commandment_n but_o i_o commend_v unto_o you_o only_o love_n love_v one_o another_o c._n and_o as_o before_o in_o a_o general_a form_n of_o doctrine_n so_o now_o in_o a_o particular_a he_o set_v before_o we_o a_o example_n to_o follow_v for_o he_o love_v all_o his_o disciple_n to_o the_o end_n they_o shall_v in_o like_a manner_n love_v one_o another_o b._n and_o all_o his_o commandment_n be_v finish_v in_o this_o only_a commandment_n of_o mutual_a love_n 13._o great_a love_n have_v no_o man_n than_o this_o that_o a_o man_n bestow_v his_o life_n for_o his_o friend_n c._n christ_n sometime_o commend_v the_o greatness_n of_o his_o love_n toward_o we_o that_o he_o may_v thereby_o the_o better_a establish_v and_o confirm_v the_o trust_n of_o our_o salvation_n but_o now_o he_o go_v far_o that_o he_o may_v inflame_v we_o by_o his_o example_n to_o love_v our_o brother_n notwithstanding_o he_o join_v boath_n together_o for_o he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o taste_v by_o faith_n the_o exceed_a sweetness_n of_o his_o goodness_n then_o by_o this_o reason_n he_o allure_v we_o to_o the_o study_n and_o desyer_n of_o love_n ij_o ephe._n v._n ij_o so_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v walk_v in_o love_n even_o as_o christ_n have_v love_v we_o and_o have_v give_v himself_o a_o oblation_n and_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o a_o sweet_a smell_n unto_o god_n 3.16_o i._o joh_n 3.16_o a._n also_o saint_n john_n say_v hereby_o know_v we_o love_v because_o he_o have_v give_v his_o life_n for_o we_o and_o we_o ought_v to_o geve_v our_o life_n for_o our_o brother_n c._n god_n may_v have_v redeem_v we_o with_o his_o word_n in_o a_o moment_n if_o so_o be_v for_o our_o sake_n it_o have_v not_o seem_v better_a unto_o he_o by_o not_o spare_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n to_o declare_v in_o his_o personne_fw-fr what_o great_a care_n he_o have_v for_o our_o salvation_n now_o they_o must_v have_v to_o hard_a and_o stoany_a heart_n which_o will_v not_o be_v mollefy_v with_o such_o unspeakable_a sweetness_n of_o god_n love_n bu_n man_n have_v nothing_o in_o this_o world_n more_o pretiouse_a than_o life_n he_o have_v rather_o hazard_v his_o riches_n and_o whatsoever_o else_o he_o have_v in_o this_o world_n rather_o than_o to_o suffer_v his_o life_n to_o come_v into_o peril_n 26._o math._n i6_n 26._o whereupon_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o the_o gospel_n what_o do_v it_o profit_n a_o man_n if_o he_o win_v the_o whoal_n world_n and_o lose_v his_o own_o soul_n or_o what_o shall_v a_o man_n geve_v to_o redeem_v his_o own_o soul_n withal_o wherefore_o among_o man_n there_o be_v not_o a_o great_a token_n of_o love_n then_o if_o a_o man_n geve_v his_o life_n for_o his_o friend_n therefore_o great_a and_o unspekable_a be_v the_o love_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n toward_o we_o by_o which_o he_o voutsafe_v to_o dye_v for_o us._n u.x._n rom._n u.x._n c_o notwithstanding_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v how_o christ_n die_v for_o his_o friend_n see_v that_o we_o be_v his_o enemy_n before_o he_o reconcile_v we_o evenas_a the_o apostle_n paul_n testify_v c._n for_o he_o have_v satisfy_v for_o sin_n by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o death_n put_v away_o quite_o the_o enmity_n which_o be_v between_o god_n and_o us._n the_o solution_n of_o this_o question_n may_v be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o sixtéene_a verse_n of_o the_o three_o chapter_n go_v before_o where_o we_o say_v that_o in_o respect_n of_o ourselves_o there_o be_v enmity_n betéene_v god_n and_o we_o until_o such_o time_n as_o our_o sin_n be_v abolish_v by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n but_o we_o than_o say_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o grace_n exhibit_v in_o christ_n be_v the_o everlasting_a love_n of_o god_n by_o which_o also_o he_o love_v his_o enemy_n a._n christ_n therefore_o die_v for_o his_o friend_n who_o notwithstanding_o be_v unjust_a for_o so_o say_v peter_n christ_n die_v once_o for_o sin_n the_o just_a for_o the_o unjust_a to_o bring_v we_o unto_o god_n 14._o you_o be_v my_o friend_n if_o you_o do_v whatsoever_o i_o command_v you_o bu_n christ_n require_v in_o the_o faithful_a a_o notable_a love_n and_o desyer_n of_o godliness_n lest_o they_o shall_v boast_n in_o vain_a that_o christ_n die_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o world_n they_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n live_v to_o the_o world_n which_o they_o be_v wont_v to_o do_v which_o be_v persuade_v that_o the_o gospel_n bear_v with_o sin_n and_o that_o christian_a liberty_n be_v leave_v to_o sin_n they_z judge_n and_o do_v far_o otherwise_o who_o true_o love_v christ_n c._n but_o christ_n mean_v not_o that_o we_o have_v get_v such_o honour_n by_o our_o own_o merit_n but_o only_o show_v upon_o what_o condition_n
so_o the_o excuse_n which_o he_o grant_v unto_o they_o do_v not_o quite_o absolve_v they_o but_o do_v only_o extenuate_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o wickedness_n according_a to_o this_o say_n 47_o lu._n i2_n 47_o the_o servant_n which_o know_v his_o master_n will_n and_o do_v not_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v beat_v with_o many_o stripe_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o purpose_n of_o christ_n to_o promise_v pardon_n unto_o other_o but_o to_o keep_v under_o his_o enemy_n which_o have_v obstinate_o reject_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n whereby_o it_o may_v plain_o appear_v that_o they_o be_v unworthy_a of_o all_o pardon_n and_o mercy_n and_o we_o must_v note_n that_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o his_o bare_a come_n but_o of_o that_o come_n which_o be_v join_v with_o doctrine_n neither_o be_v it_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o body_n that_o do_v so_o much_o condemn_v they_o as_o do_v the_o contempt_n of_o his_o doctrine_n the_o which_o make_v they_o clean_o without_o excuse_n and_o under_o their_o person_n he_o mind_v to_o make_v all_o other_o afeard_a which_o do_v either_o reject_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n offer_v unto_o they_o or_o else_o do_v oppugn_v or_o withstand_v the_o same_o when_o they_o know_v it_o but_o although_o terrible_a vengeance_n hang_v over_o their_o head_n christ_n notwithstanding_o have_v rather_o respect_n hear_v unto_o his_o disciple_n that_o he_o may_v encourage_v they_o with_o the_o undoubted_a hope_n of_o victory_n lest_o at_o any_o time_n they_o shall_v geve_v place_n unto_o the_o malice_n and_o wickedness_n of_o the_o wicked_a for_o when_o we_o hear_v that_o such_o destruction_n shall_v be_v we_o may_v then_o triumph_n evena_n it_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o battle_n 23._o he_o that_o hate_v i_o hate_v my_o father_n also_o m._n here_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o transposition_n of_o matter_n for_o this_o sentence_n seem_v to_o appertain_v unto_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o speak_v by_o and_o by_o concern_v the_o hate_n of_o he_o and_o of_o his_o father_n and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v set_v in_o his_o proper_a place_n but_o whether_o it_o be_v transpose_v or_o not_o it_o be_v a_o notable_a place_n by_o which_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o no_o man_n hate_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o he_o hate_v god_n himself_o also_o many_o profess_v otherwise_o with_o they_o be_v mouth_n for_o when_o they_o abhor_v the_o gospel_n they_o will_v seem_v notwithstanding_o to_o be_v excellent_a worshipper_n of_o god_n but_o they_o be_v dissembler_n for_o in_o their_o heart_n lurk_v the_o contempt_n of_o god_n thus_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o by_o the_o light_n of_o his_o doctrine_n he_o bewray_v the_o wickedness_n and_o hypocrisy_n of_o many_o concern_v the_o which_o matter_n read_v the_o three_o and_o fifte_a chapter_n go_v before_o m._n and_o this_o be_v the_o common_a error_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o man_n think_v that_o they_o know_v love_n and_o worship_n god_n without_o christ_n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o god_n that_o they_o do_v not_o reject_v he_o and_o hate_v he_o when_o they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o his_o son_n when_o they_o reject_v and_o hate_v he_o therefore_o by_o this_o say_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v condemn_v as_o hater_n of_o god_n which_o detest_v the_o truth_n of_o christ_n doctrine_n worse_o than_o they_o do_v a_o dog_n or_o serpent_n whether_o they_o be_v jew_n turk_n or_o false_a christian_n c._n this_o place_n therefore_o agréeeth_n with_o those_o which_o we_o have_v see_v before_o as_o this_o he_z which_o evel_n do_v hate_v the_o light_n 5.23_o john_n 3_z x_o john_n 5.23_o also_o he_o which_o honour_v not_o the_o son_n honour_v not_o the_o father_n which_o send_v he_o 24_o if_o i_o have_v not_o do_v among_o they_o the_o work_n which_o no_o other_o man_n do_v they_o shall_v have_v have_v no_o sin_n but_o now_o have_v they_o boath_n seen_v and_o hate_v not_o only_o i_o but_o also_o my_o father_n m._n christ_n take_v away_o from_o the_o scribe_n and_o phariseis_n his_o enemy_n all_o excuse_n not_o only_o for_o that_o he_o come_v unto_o they_o and_o speak_v unto_o they_o but_o also_o because_o he_o have_v wrought_v so_o many_o wonderful_a work_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o even_o before_o their_o face_n euenas_n if_o christ_n shall_v have_v say_v bu_n my_o work_n which_o i_o have_v wrought_v among_o they_o do_v manifest_o prove_v that_o i_o be_o the_o true_a son_n of_o god_n the_o father_n from_o who_o i_o be_o not_o divide_v in_o escence_n neither_o have_v there_o be_v any_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n which_o have_v wrought_v so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a miracle_n moses_n true_o wrought_v many_o great_a miracle_n in_o egypt_n so_o do_v elizeus_fw-la and_o so_o do_v other_o of_o the_o prophet_n but_o yet_o no_o man_n be_v ever_o comparable_a unto_o christ_n for_o he_o do_v all_o thing_n by_o his_o own_o power_n neither_o do_v he_o hurt_v to_o any_o man_n but_o profit_v all_o man_n c._n for_o in_o this_o christ_n excel_v in_o miracle_n because_o he_o be_v not_o a_o servant_n as_o be_v the_o rest_n but_o be_v proper_o the_o authoure_n himself_o for_o he_o use_v his_o own_o name_n his_o own_o empery_n and_o his_o own_o power_n to_o work_v miracle_n moreover_o by_o the_o name_n of_o work_n he_o comprehend_v all_o those_o token_n of_o his_o divine_a glory_n which_o he_o show_v for_o both_o by_o miracle_n and_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o by_o other_o document_n also_o he_o plain_o prove_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o now_o have_v they_o both_o see_v c._n now_o he_o conclude_v that_o his_o enemy_n can_v escape_v by_o any_o manner_n of_o excuse_n because_o they_o have_v despise_v his_o power_n which_o plain_o appear_v to_o be_v divine_a for_o god_n have_v reveal_v his_o majesty_n in_o his_o son_n wherefore_o they_o shall_v say_v in_o vain_a that_o they_o have_v to_o do_v only_o with_o a_o mortal_a man_n if_o he_o have_v only_o say_v but_o now_o they_o have_v see_v and_o not_o beléeve_v their_o fault_n have_v be_v the_o less_o but_o when_o he_o say_v that_o they_o see_v and_o hate_a boath_n he_o and_o his_o father_n he_o take_v from_o they_o all_o excuse_n c._n this_o place_n teach_v we_o how_o attentive_a we_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o consider_v the_o work_n of_o god_n in_o the_o which_o when_o he_o declare_v his_o power_n he_o will_v have_v that_o honour_n give_v unto_o he_o which_o be_v due_a whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v unthankful_a unto_o god_n which_o obscure_a his_o gift_n or_o contemptuouslye_o over_o pass_v they_o 25._o but_o this_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o word_n may_v be_v fulfil_v that_o be_v wrighten_a in_o their_o law_n they_o hate_v i_o wih_o out_o cause_n c._n that_o which_o be_v supernatural_a seem_v to_o be_v incredible_a but_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o unreasonable_a than_o to_o hate_v god_n therefore_o christ_n say_v that_o their_o mind_n be_v so_o stuff_v with_o malice_n that_o they_o hate_v without_o a_o cause_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v amplifye_v they_o be_v wickedness_n and_o he_o allege_v a_o place_n cut_v of_o the_o psalm_n which_o he_o say_v be_v now_o fulfil_v not_o that_o the_o same_o have_v not_o happen_v before_o unto_o david_n 35.19_o psal_n 35.19_o but_o because_o he_o will_v reprehend_v the_o obstinate_a wickedness_n of_o that_o nation_n which_o continue_v from_o age_n to_o age_n without_o end_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o they_o be_v nothing_o better_a than_o their_o father_n which_o wear_v enemy_n unto_o david_n without_o a_o cause_n m._n the_o prophet_n often_o time_n complain_v as_o well_o in_o his_o own_o as_o in_o christ_n name_n 69.5_o psa_n 25_o 19_o psa_fw-la 69.5_o that_o he_o be_v hate_v of_o his_o enemy_n without_o a_o cause_n and_o this_o be_v not_o without_o great_a consolation_n if_o so_o be_v our_o conscience_n bear_v we_o witness_n we_o be_v guiltless_a and_o innocent_a be_v subject_a to_o the_o unjust_a hatred_n of_o wicked_a man_n so_o that_o we_o can_v say_v with_o the_o prophet_n and_o with_o christ_n they_o hate_v i_o without_o a_o cause_n bu_n for_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o christ_n must_v also_o be_v understand_v of_o his_o member_n for_o as_o he_o be_v hate_v of_o they_o unjust_o and_o with_o out_o desert_n who_o ought_v to_o have_v love_v he_o evenso_fw-la the_o world_n persecute_v the_o godly_a for_o no_o other_o cause_n then_o for_o that_o they_o geve_v good_a counsel_n condemn_v unrighteousness_n and_o commend_v sanctimony_n and_o a_o bless_a life_n for_o the_o which_o they_o be_v to_o be_v belove_v and_o not_o to_o be_v hate_v cyr._n for_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v what_o cause_n they_o have_v to_o hate_v for_o
of_o one_o spirit_n 4.5_o ephe._n 4.5_o and_o of_o one_o baptism_n and_o may_v acknowledge_v one_o lord_n c._n therefore_o he_o prefix_v again_o the_o scope_n of_o our_o felicity_n in_o unity_n and_o not_o without_o cause_n for_o this_o be_v the_o destruction_n of_o mankind_n that_o the_o same_o be_v draw_v and_o fall_v from_o god_n be_v lame_a disperse_v and_o confound_v in_o itself_o therefore_o the_o repair_n thereof_o be_v contrary_a namely_o that_o the_o same_o must_v grow_v together_o into_o one_o body_n even_o as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v he_o give_v some_o apostle_n 4.13_o ephe._n 4.13_o and_o some_o prophet_n and_o some_o evangelist_n and_o some_o shepherd_n and_o teacher_n to_o the_o gather_v together_o of_o the_o saint_n into_o the_o work_n of_o ministration_n into_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n till_o we_o all_o meet_v together_o into_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n wherefore_o so_o often_o as_o christ_n make_v mention_n of_o unity_n christ_n unity_n in_o christ_n let_v we_o remember_v how_o horrible_a the_o dissipation_n and_o confusion_n of_o the_o world_n be_v without_o he_o furthermore_o let_v we_o know_v that_o this_o be_v the_o begin_n of_o a_o happy_a life_n if_o so_o be_v we_o all_o be_v govern_v and_o do_v live_v by_o the_o only_a spirit_n of_o god_n god_n unity_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n m._n but_o withal_o let_v we_o remember_v that_o this_o unity_n come_v not_o but_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n therefore_o christ_n pray_v the_o father_n that_o he_o will_v give_v unto_o they_o to_o be_v one_o this_o gift_n be_v not_o get_v but_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n the_o spirit_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o unity_n but_o of_o discord_n r._n among_o the_o wicked_a there_o be_v not_o one_o faith_n for_o one_o believe_v in_o his_o fast_n another_o in_o his_o sacrifice_n this_o fellow_n believe_v in_o saint_n nicholas_n and_o that_o fellow_n in_o saint_n michael_n some_o in_o the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o other_o some_o in_o saint_n anne_n and_o look_v how_o many_o man_n so_o many_o god_n there_o be_v among_o the_o wicked_a therefore_o the_o true_a unity_n be_v among_o christian_n only_a which_o be_v of_o one_o spirit_n which_o have_v one_o lord_n and_o one_o saviour_n c._n moreover_o we_o must_v note_v that_o so_o often_o as_o christ_n in_o this_o chapter_n pronounce_v himself_o to_o be_v one_o with_o the_o father_n he_o speak_v not_o simple_o of_o his_o divine_a essence_n but_o be_v call_v one_o in_o the_o person_n of_o a_o mediator_n in_o that_o he_o be_v our_o head_n a._n saint_n john_n comprehend_v this_o conjunction_n of_o the_o which_o christ_n speak_v here_o in_o few_o word_n say_v 1.3_o 1._o john_n 1.3_o that_o which_o we_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v we_o show_v unto_o you_o that_o you_o also_o may_v have_v fellowsippe_n with_o we_o and_o that_o our_o fellowship_n may_v be_v with_o the_o father_n and_o with_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n 12.12_o 1._o joh._n 2.24_o rom._n 12.4_o 1._o cor._n 12.12_o and_o in_o another_o place_n if_o that_o abide_v in_o you_o which_o you_o have_v hear_v from_o the_o beginning_n you_o shall_v continue_v in_o the_o son_n and_o in_o the_o father_n that_o the_o world_n may_v believe_v c._n some_o by_o this_o word_n world_n understande_v the_o elect_n which_o at_o that_o time_n be_v disperse_v but_o because_o throughout_o this_o whole_a chapter_n by_o the_o world_n he_o mean_v the_o reprobate_n the_o contrary_a sentence_n and_o opition_n be_v better_a allow_v in_o the_o .25_o verse_n follow_v he_o separate_v the_o world_n of_o the_o which_o he_o speak_v here_o from_o the_o faithful_a and_o this_o word_n believe_v be_v improper_o put_v by_o the_o evangelist_n for_o the_o word_n know_v see_v the_o wicked_a be_v convince_v by_o experience_n itself_o do_v understande_v and_o perceyve_v the_o heavenly_a and_o divine_a glory_n of_o christ_n thus_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o in_o believe_v they_o believe_v not_o because_o this_o sense_n and_o understanding_n do_v not_o perch_n into_o the_o internal_a affection_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o this_o be_v the_o just_a judgement_n and_o vengeance_n of_o god_n that_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o reprobate_n shall_v be_v blind_v with_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o divine_a glory_n which_o be_v unworthy_a of_o his_o sincere_a sight_n r._n christ_n therefore_o pray_v his_o father_n that_o he_o will_v confirm_v the_o faithful_a in_o one_o spirit_n that_o all_o the_o world_n may_v know_v that_o he_o come_v by_o divine_a authority_n into_o this_o world_n and_o this_o begin_v first_o to_o be_v fulfil_v 4.32_o act._n 4.32_o when_o by_o the_o send_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o faithful_a have_v one_o heart_n and_o one_o mind_n the_o which_o thing_n be_v wonderful_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o wicked_a be_v constrain_v to_o cry_v this_o be_v the_o finger_n of_o god_n and_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o most_o high_a 22._o and_o the_o glory_n which_o thou_o give_v i_o i_o have_v give_v they_o that_o they_o also_o may_v be_v one_o as_o we_o also_o be_v one_o c._n mark_v and_o consider_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o example_n express_v in_o christ_n of_o perfect_a blessedness_n that_o he_o have_v nothing_o proper_a to_o himself_o but_o be_v rather_o make_v scotfree_a to_o enrich_v all_o those_o that_o be_v his_o faithful_a servant_n this_o be_v our_o blessedness_n that_o the_o image_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v repair_v and_o frame_v anew_o which_o before_o be_v decay_v and_o destroy_v by_o sin_n for_o christ_n not_o only_o as_o he_o be_v the_o eternal_a word_n of_o god_n be_v his_o lively_a image_n but_o also_o have_v the_o express_a picture_n of_o his_o father_n glory_n engrave_v in_o his_o human_a nature_n of_o the_o which_o he_o be_v make_v partaker_n with_o we_o that_o he_o may_v transfigure_v his_o member_n into_o the_o same_o the_o same_o also_o paul_n teach_v 3.18_o 2._o cor._n 3.18_o we_o all_o behold_v as_o in_o a_o mirror_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n with_o his_o face_n open_a and_o be_v change_v into_o the_o same_o similitude_n from_o glory_n to_o glory_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o none_o shall_v be_v count_v for_o a_o disciple_n of_o christ_n but_o he_o in_o who_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n imprint_v by_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n as_o by_o a_o signet_n be_v express_v notwithstanding_o there_o be_v some_o which_o by_o this_o glory_n which_o christ_n confess_v that_o he_o have_v receyve_v from_o his_o father_n understande_v the_o love_n with_o the_o which_o he_o be_v love_v of_o the_o father_n before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n of_o the_o which_o glory_n he_o will_v speak_v anon_o other_o some_o refere_v it_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o miracle_n and_o to_o that_o ample_a power_n of_o the_o spirit_n by_o which_o the_o first_o believer_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o disciple_n wrought_v great_a miracle_n than_o the_o lord_n himself_o that_o this_o place_n may_v agree_v with_o that_o of_o mark_n the_o sign_n shall_v follow_v they_o that_o believe_v 16.17_o ma●_n 16.17_o in_o my_o name_n they_o shall_v cast_v out_o devil_n they_o shall_v speak_v with_o new_a tongue_n etc._n etc._n the_o rest_n by_o this_o word_n glory_n understande_v the_o gospel_n the_o which_o christ_n give_v unto_o the_o beléever_n for_o if_o the_o ministration_n of_o condemnation_n be_v glory_n much_o more_o shall_v the_o ministration_n of_o righteousness_n excel_v in_o glory_n but_o the_o first_o exposition_n be_v best_a to_o be_v allow_v 23._o i_o in_o they_o and_o thou_o in_o i_o that_o they_o be_v make_v perfect_a in_o one_o &_o that_o the_o world_n may_v know_v that_o thou_o have_v send_v i_o and_o have_v love_v they_o as_o thou_o have_v love_v i_o m._n christ_n speak_v not_o here_o of_o that_o perfection_n of_o unity_n by_o which_o he_o be_v one_o with_o the_o father_n but_o of_o that_o manner_n of_o unity_n by_o which_o he_o be_v unite_v in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n in_o he_o and_o he_o speak_v as_o a_o mediator_n by_o who_o we_o be_v make_v one_o with_o god_n c._n for_o his_o purpose_n be_v to_o show_v that_o all_o the_o fullness_n of_o goodness_n and_o that_o also_o which_o be_v hide_v in_o god_n be_v now_o open_o to_o be_v see_v in_o he_o that_o he_o may_v make_v his_o member_n partaker_n of_o the_o same_o even_o as_o the_o water_n flow_v from_o the_o condite_fw-la head_n to_o diverse_a place_n by_o pipe_n serve_v diverse_a city_n and_o water_v sundry_a field_n when_o he_o add_v and_o have_v love_v they_o as_o thou_o have_v love_v i_o he_o note_v the_o cause_n and_o original_n of_o love_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v because_o thou_o haste_v love_v they_o thou_o
how_o do_v these_o thing_n agree_v that_o nathanael_n be_v offend_v at_o the_o baseness_n of_o the_o country_n question_n and_o be_v now_o call_v of_o christ_n a_o true_a israelite_n special_o see_v that_o christ_n say_v 11_o math._n 11_o bless_a be_v he_o which_o be_v not_o offend_v by_o i_o it_o may_v be_v answer_v that_o although_o he_o be_v offend_v at_o the_o baseness_n of_o the_o country_n of_o christ_n answer_v answer_v yet_o notwithstanding_o because_o he_o simp_o make_v haste_n to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n whereas_o other_o do_v caluminate_v therefore_o he_o be_v call_v a_o true_a israelite_n m._n so_o that_o christ_n fare_v as_o though_o he_o know_v not_o that_o scrupe_fw-la in_o nathanael_n which_o he_o have_v of_o the_o base_a nazareth_n and_o show_v he_o the_o whole_a matter_n which_o be_v that_o he_o may_v know_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o certain_a argument_n who_o philip_n have_v call_v the_o son_n of_o joseph_n for_o it_o belong_v to_o god_n only_o to_o search_v the_o heart_n and_o reign_v c._n but_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v in_o few_o word_n understande_v the_o mind_n of_o christ_n we_o must_v note_v that_o deceit_n be_v oppose_v or_o set_v against_o sincerity_n he_o call_v therefore_o those_o deceitful_a which_o in_o another_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v call_v double_a in_o heart_n and_o not_o only_o that_o gross_a hypocrisy_n be_v touch_v when_o man_n feign_v themselves_o to_o be_v good_a who_o conscience_n bear_v themselves_o witness_v that_o they_o be_v evil_a but_o also_o the_o inward_a hypocrisy_n when_o man_n be_v so_o blind_a in_o their_o sin_n that_o they_o do_v not_o only_o lie_v to_o themselves_o but_o to_o other_o also_o the_o integrity_n therefore_o of_o the_o hart_n before_o god_n and_o the_o upright_o deal_v towards_o man_n make_v a_o true_a christian_a but_o christ_n special_o touch_v that_o deceit_n whereof_o mention_n be_v make_v in_o the_o psalm_n 25_o psal_n 32_o gen._n 25_o m._n so_o it_o be_v say_v of_o jacob_n that_o he_o be_v a_o simple_a and_o plain_a man_n and_o dwell_v in_o tent_n whereupon_o we_o at_o this_o day_n must_v note_v that_o if_o we_o mean_v to_o be_v disciple_n of_o christ_n we_o must_v be_v simple_a in_o mind_n for_o he_o love_v not_o those_o that_o be_v crafty_a and_o wise_a according_a to_o this_o world_n but_o those_o that_o be_v simple_a and_o void_a of_o deceit_n 10_o math._n 10_o be_v you_o simple_a say_v our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o dove_n and_o saint_n peter_n say_v say_v aside_o all_o maliciousness_n 2_o 1._o epist_n 2_o and_o all_o guile_n and_o fainednesse_n and_o as_o new_o bear_v babe_n desire_v you_o the_o milk_n of_o the_o word_n which_o be_v without_o all_o deceit_n 18_o math._n 18_o and_o our_o saviour_n christ_n except_o you_o become_v as_o child_n you_o can_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n what_o christian_n therefore_o be_v they_o which_o be_v rather_o like_a unto_o wolf_n and_o serpent_n then_o to_o sheep_n and_o doove_n be_v full_a of_o all_o manner_n of_o deceit_n hypocrisy_n and_o malice_n 38._o nathanael_n say_v unto_o he_o whence_o know_v thou_o i_o jesus_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o he_o before_o that_o phillippe_n call_v thou_o when_o thou_o be_v under_o the_o fig_n tree_n i_o see_v thou_o nathanael_n say_v unto_o he_o whence_o know_v thou_o i_o m._n nathanael_n be_v all_o one_o manner_n of_o man_n still_o when_o he_o hear_v that_o christ_n have_v give_v he_o so_o notable_a a_o title_n in_o call_v he_o a_o true_a israelite_n he_o be_v not_o tickle_v with_o pride_n in_o mind_n neither_o do_v he_o in_o like_a manner_n by_o and_o by_o burst_v forth_o into_o the_o praise_n of_o christ_n who_o he_o know_v not_o as_o many_o clawbacks_n be_v wont_v to_o do_v neither_o do_v he_o by_o hypocrisy_n dissemble_v the_o commendation_n of_o honesty_n and_o sincerity_n which_o christ_n give_v unto_o he_o say_v thou_o know_v not_o i_o whence_o i_o be_o peradventure_o i_o be_o not_o so_o free_a from_o deceit_n as_o thou_o think_v i_o be_o after_o the_o which_o manner_n hypocrite_n be_v wont_v to_o dissemble_v the_o praise_n offer_v unto_o they_o when_o as_o in_o heart_n it_o do_v they_o good_a to_o hear_v it_o but_o nathanael_n do_v not_o thus_o dissemble_v for_o as_o he_o be_v a_o man_n void_a of_o all_o deceit_n so_o simp_o he_o utter_v by_o and_o by_o in_o word_n that_o admiration_n which_o he_o have_v conceyve_v in_o mind_n and_o demand_v of_o he_o that_o which_o more_o pertain_v to_o the_o matter_n he_o think_v that_o christ_n speak_v of_o he_o as_o one_o who_o he_o have_v know_v a_o great_a while_n before_o when_o as_o he_o in_o like_a manner_n know_v he_o not_o for_o this_o nathanael_n have_v at_o no_o time_n any_o manner_n of_o acquaintance_n familiarity_n or_o fellowship_n with_o christ_n wherefore_o not_o without_o good_a cause_n as_o one_o amaze_v he_o ask_v say_v whence_o know_v thou_o i_o before_o that_o philip_n call_v thou_o c._n this_o answer_n of_o christ_n seem_v to_o be_v little_a to_o the_o purpose_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o very_o apt_a and_o of_o great_a weight_n for_o as_o it_o be_v proper_a to_o god_n to_o know_v man_n which_o he_o never_o see_v even_o so_o also_o it_o be_v proper_a unto_o he_o to_o see_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o before_o his_o eye_n when_o nathanael_n therefore_o perceyve_v that_o he_o be_v see_v of_o christ_n not_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n but_o with_o divine_a eye_n he_o may_v thereby_o gather_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o now_o unto_o he_o as_o a_o man_n c._n wherefore_o christ_n do_v insinuate_v himself_o to_o nathanael_n and_o do_v so_o secret_o creape_v into_o his_o mind_n at_o full_a when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o know_v he_o and_o see_v he_o a_o far_o of_o under_o the_o fig_n tree_n that_o he_o acknowledge_v he_o afterward_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god._n c._n furthermore_o we_o may_v gather_v by_o this_o place_n a_o very_a comfortable_a doctrine_n name_o that_o when_o we_o think_v not_o of_o christ_n we_o be_v see_v of_o he_o and_o so_o it_o must_v needs_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o he_o can_v reduce_v those_o that_o go_v astraye_v and_o be_v turn_v from_o he_o m._n whosoever_o they_o be_v therefore_o that_o pertain_v unto_o christ_n they_o be_v not_o only_o in_o his_o knowledge_n but_o in_o his_o sight_n also_o and_o that_o before_o they_o be_v call_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o know_v those_o that_o be_v he_o but_o he_o see_v they_o also_o in_o what_o place_n soever_o they_o be_v great_a therefore_o be_v this_o consolation_n to_o a_o faithful_a mind_n when_o it_o beléeve_v that_o it_o be_v always_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o lord_n whether_o we_o live_v or_o dye_v 49._o nathanael_n answer_v and_o say_v unto_o he_o rabbi_n thou_o be_v even_o the_o very_a son_n of_o god_n thou_o be_v the_o king_n of_o israel_n r._n it_o appear_v that_o the_o answer_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o vain_a for_o by_o the_o same_o he_o breathe_v himself_o into_o the_o mind_n of_o nathanael_n insomuch_o that_o most_o effectual_o he_o feel_v his_o divinitye_n whereupon_o he_o by_o and_o by_o burst_v out_o into_o this_o confession_n rabbi_n thou_o be_v even_o the_o very_a son_n of_o god_n a._n in_o the_o which_o he_o confess_v more_o than_o he_o have_v hear_v before_o of_o philip._n for_o he_o have_v say_v that_o he_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o joseph_n but_o nathanael_n acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o pronounce_v jesus_n to_o come_v out_o of_o nazareth_n but_o this_o man_n fréelye_o preach_v he_o to_o be_v the_o king_n of_o all_o israel_n so_o great_a and_o effectual_a be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o elect_a and_o choose_v of_o god_n c._n and_o in_o that_o nathanael_n by_o the_o divine_a power_n acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n but_o for_o what_o cause_n do_v he_o call_v he_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n question_v for_o they_o seem_v not_o to_o be_v thing_n agreeable_a but_o rather_o contrary_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n but_o nathanael_n have_v a_o far_a respect_n answer_n answer_n he_o have_v hear_v before_o that_o he_o be_v the_o messiah_n now_o to_o this_o doctrine_n he_o add_v a_o confirmation_n he_o hould_v also_o another_o principle_n name_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v not_o come_v but_o that_o he_o shall_v also_o declare_v himself_o unto_o the_o people_n to_o be_v a_o king_n so_o that_o he_o do_v truelye_o confess_v he_o to_o be_v the_o king_n of_o israel_n which_o be_v the_o
thing_n of_o nothing_o m._n yea_o truelye_o he_o can_v have_v do_v it_o what_o need_n be_v there_o then_o of_o the_o element_n of_o water_n sure_o this_o water_n which_o he_o use_v make_v the_o miracle_n more_o evident_a than_o if_o he_o have_v make_v wine_n of_o nothing_o for_o else_o it_o may_v have_v be_v think_v that_o he_o have_v do_v it_o by_o conjuration_n and_o so_o there_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v so_o manifest_a testimony_n of_o the_o truth_n if_o he_o have_v fill_v the_o empty_a vessel_n with_o wine_n and_o they_o fill_v they_o up_o to_o the_o brim_n c._n this_o commandment_n may_v have_v seem_v foolish_a and_o vain_a to_o the_o wait_a servant_n for_o there_o be_v water_n sufficient_a before_o but_o after_o this_o manner_n god_n common_o deal_v with_o we_o that_o his_o power_n may_v have_v the_o great_a success_n unlooked_v for_o 8._o and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o draw_v out_o now_o and_o bear_v unto_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n and_o they_o bear_v it_o bu_n we_o read_v not_o that_o christ_n speak_v any_o thing_n at_o the_o turn_n of_o the_o water_n or_o use_v any_o monstrous_a word_n as_o the_o conjurer_n do_v for_o with_o he_o to_o will_n be_v to_o speak_v and_o to_o speak_v be_v to_o will_n even_o as_o therefore_o before_o time_n he_o speak_v the_o word_n and_o they_o be_v make_v he_o command_v and_o all_o thing_n have_v their_o be_v 148._o psal_n 148._o even_o so_o now_o also_o because_o he_o will_v and_o command_v by_o his_o secret_a power_n the_o water_n be_v turn_v into_o wine_n his_o power_n work_v the_o very_a same_o that_o it_o wrought_v in_o the_o beginning_n 14●_n psal_n 14●_n in_o the_o creation_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n m._n but_o why_o do_v he_o rather_o send_v it_o to_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n than_o to_o the_o bridegroom_n or_o to_o his_o guest_n a_o order_n in_o this_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v by_o which_o the_o miracle_n may_v be_v make_v more_o manifest_a if_o the_o wine_n have_v be_v bring_v first_o to_o the_o bridegroom_n or_o to_o his_o guest_n they_o will_v have_v think_v that_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n have_v bring_v the_o same_o by_o his_o provision_n &_o that_o it_o have_v be_v keep_v hitherto_o by_o his_o care_n the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n know_v that_o there_o be_v no_o wine_n and_o therefore_o the_o wine_n be_v bring_v first_o of_o all_o unto_o he_o by_o good_a order_n for_o the_o more_o certainty_n of_o the_o matter_n c._n the_o evangelist_n call_v he_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n which_o be_v make_v chief_a overséer_o of_o the_o table_n who_o we_o common_o call_v the_o sewer_n not_o that_o it_o be_v so_o great_a a_o banquet_n that_o such_o officer_n be_v require_v but_o because_o the_o honourable_a name_n be_v also_o transfer_v to_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o poor_a out_o of_o the_o order_n of_o banquet_v of_o the_o rich_a and_o they_o bear_v it_o c._n in_o that_o the_o minister_n so_o willing_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n we_o may_v thereby_o gather_v that_o there_o be_v much_o dignity_n and_o reverence_n in_o he_o a._n so_o in_o another_o place_n when_o he_o command_v the_o multitude_n to_o sit_v down_o ●_o john_n ●_o they_o obey_v he_o although_o they_o see_v no_o preparation_n before_o they_o 9_o when_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o feast_n have_v taste_v of_o the_o water_n that_o be_v make_v wine_n and_o know_v not_o whence_o it_o be_v but_o the_o minister_n which_o draw_v the_o water_n know_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n call_v the_o bridegroom_n when_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o feast_n have_v taste_v bu_n now_o the_o excellent_a and_o famous_a miracle_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v reveal_v his_o clemencye_n commend_v and_o his_o power_n and_o glory_n praise_v but_o the_o minister_n which_o draw_v the_o water_n know_v m._n he_o can_v without_o the_o help_n of_o the_o minister_n have_v fill_v the_o water_n pot_n with_o water_n &_o of_o the_o water_n make_v wine_n but_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o miracle_n shall_v be_v so_o dispose_v that_o they_o may_v be_v his_o witness_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n they_o be_v command_v to_o fill_v the_o water_n pot_n a_o fresh_a that_o afterward_o the_o wine_n be_v draw_v out_o of_o they_o they_o may_v undoubtedlye_o know_v whereof_o it_o be_v make_v so_o he_o command_v his_o disciple_n to_o see_v how_o many_o loaf_n they_o have_v then_o when_o he_o have_v bless_v he_o give_v to_o they_o to_o set_v before_o the_o people_n and_o last_o of_o all_o he_o command_v to_o take_v up_o the_o fragment_n all_o the_o which_o miracle_n be_v do_v that_o they_o may_v have_v certain_a experience_n of_o the_o miracle_n do_v and_o god_n use_v this_o manner_n of_o work_a miracle_n in_o the_o world_n very_o much_o insomuch_o that_o he_o will_v not_o do_v many_o thing_n without_o the_o help_n of_o man_n which_o he_o can_v otherwise_o do_v he_o can_v bring_v all_o thing_n out_o of_o the_o earth_n which_o we_o use_v without_o the_o work_n of_o plough_v plant_v and_o water_v but_o he_o have_v so_o appoint_v that_o we_o must_v plant_v and_o water_n and_o he_o will_v geve_v the_o increase_n not_o that_o it_o be_v so_o necessary_a to_o be_v do_v but_o that_o we_o may_v seek_v for_o the_o wonderful_a &_o certain_a knowledge_n &_o may_v so_o be_v nourish_v &_o grow_v in_o the_o faith_n 10._o and_o say_v unto_o he_o every_o man_n at_o the_o beginning_n do_v set_v forth_o good_a wine_n and_o when_o the_o guest_n have_v well_o drink_v then_o that_o which_o be_v worse_o but_o thou_o have_v keep_v the_o good_a wine_n until_o now_o m._n the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n think_v that_o this_o wine_n have_v be_v keep_v hitherto_o by_o want_n of_o discretion_n in_o the_o bridegroom_n concern_v the_o goodness_n whereof_o he_o witness_v say_v thou_o have_v keep_v the_o good_a wine_n until_o this_o time_n for_o this_o cause_n the_o evangelist_n think_v good_a to_o set_v before_o we_o these_o word_n of_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n although_o he_o err_v think_v that_o the_o bridegroom_n have_v keep_v the_o wine_n until_o this_o time_n that_o there_o may_v be_v sound_a and_o perfect_a testimony_n concern_v the_o wine_n first_o from_o whence_o it_o come_v concern_v which_o the_o minister_n testify_v secondelye_o what_o wine_n it_o be_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o best_a concern_v which_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n bear_v witness_v bu_n whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_o declare_v that_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n taste_v no_o other_o wine_n than_o that_o which_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v for_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o know_v not_o whence_o it_o be_v to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v understande_v that_o he_o speak_v nothing_o because_o of_o christ_n but_o that_o he_o utter_v his_o mind_n simple_o and_o true_o concern_v the_o wine_n as_o it_o be_v in_o deed_n m._n but_o by_o these_o word_n of_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o feast_n the_o manner_n and_o disposition_n of_o this_o world_n be_v lively_o depaint_v in_o that_o first_o of_o all_o they_o be_v wont_v to_o set_v before_o man_n the_o best_a and_o chief_a thing_n to_o eat_v &_o drink_v and_o after_o that_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v worse_o even_o so_o they_o which_o sell_v do_v first_o of_o all_o show_n unto_o the_o byars_n those_o thing_n which_o be_v chief_a and_o best_a but_o in_o process_n of_o time_n they_o will_v serve_v they_o with_o worse_o and_o worse_o they_z also_o which_o become_v servant_n do_v at_o the_o first_o show_v themselves_o very_o diligent_a that_o afterwards_o when_o they_o have_v get_v credit_n they_o may_v more_o easy_o beguile_v their_o master_n r._n for_o the_o world_n as_o a_o man_n will_v think_v promise_v all_o good_a thing_n with_o great_a prosperity_n but_o as_o we_o common_o see_v in_o the_o wind_a up_o it_o leave_v unto_o we_o nothing_o but_o disease_n affliction_n calamity_n and_o death_n on_o the_o contrary_a part_n christ_n even_o at_o the_o first_o lay_v on_o the_o shoulder_n of_o his_o servant_n the_o cross_n imprisonment_n persecution_n and_o death_n but_o at_o the_o last_o he_o give_v unto_o they_o joy_n and_o peace_n of_o conscience_n with_o everlasting_a life_n 11._o this_o beginning_n of_o miracle_n do_v jesus_n in_o cana_n of_o galilee_n and_o show_v forth_o his_o glory_n and_o his_o disciple_n believe_v on_o he_o this_o beginning_n of_o miracle_n do_v jesus_n c._n the_o meaning_n be_v that_o this_o be_v the_o first_o miracle_n that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n wrought_v for_o whereas_o the_o angel_n tell_v the_o shepherd_n that_o he_o be_v bear_v in_o bethlehem_n 3_o luke_n 2_o math._n 2_o mark_n 3_o whereas_o the_o star_n appear_v to_o the_o wise_a man_n whereas_o the_o
from_o our_o mother_n womb_n but_o our_o carnal_a nature_n therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o we_o be_v natural_o banish_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o celestial_a life_n do_v abide_v under_o the_o bondage_n of_o death_n this_o word_n flesh_n do_v signify_v the_o whole_a man_n for_o flesh_n in_o this_o place_n do_v not_o only_o signify_v the_o body_n but_o also_o the_o soul_n and_o every_o part_n of_o man_n for_o the_o papist_n do_v very_o fondlye_a restrain_v it_o to_o that_o part_n which_o they_o call_v sensual_a because_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o argument_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v very_o vain_a as_o to_o say_v that_o the_o second_o birth_n be_v needful_a because_o some_o part_n of_o we_o be_v corrupt_v and_o defile_v but_o if_o any_o man_n object_n and_o say_v that_o there_o remain_v yet_o some_o part_n of_o god_n gift_n in_o this_o our_o degenerate_a and_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o thereupon_o conclude_v that_o we_o be_v not_o in_o every_o part_n paruert_v and_o pollute_v we_o may_v easy_o answer_v to_o this_o objection_n and_o say_v that_o those_o gift_n which_o god_n leave_v in_o we_o after_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n in_o respect_n of_o themselves_o be_v high_o to_o be_v esteem_v and_o praise_v but_o see_v the_o contagion_n and_o corruption_n of_o sin_n have_v difund_v and_o spread_v itself_o throughout_o every_o part_n we_o shall_v find_v nothing_o in_o we_o pure_a and_o free_a from_o all_o pollusion_n wherefore_o as_o we_o have_v natural_o some_o knowledge_n of_o god_n whereas_o there_o be_v ingraff_v in_o we_o a_o certain_a discretion_n to_o judge_v between_o good_a and_o evil_a whereas_o we_o have_v wit_n and_o reason_n to_o defend_v this_o present_a life_n and_o whereas_o we_o excel_v the_o brute_n beast_n in_o so_o many_o notable_a gift_n defile_v man_n nature_n defile_v these_o thing_n of_o themselves_o and_o as_o they_o proceed_v from_o god_n be_v very_o notable_a but_o all_o thing_n be_v defile_v in_o we_o no_o less_o than_o the_o wine_n that_o be_v unsavery_a through_o stink_a vessel_n be_v make_v thereby_o very_o hurtful_a therefore_o because_o man_n be_v by_o nature_n from_o his_o mother_n birth_n only_o carnal_a he_o must_v be_v transform_v again_o by_o the_o spirit_n that_o he_o may_v begin_v to_o be_v spiritual_a and_o this_o word_n spirit_n be_v here_o take_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n name_o for_o grace_n and_o for_o the_o effect_n of_o grace_n for_o in_o the_o first_o place_n christ_n teach_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o only_a author_n of_o a_o pure_a and_o reform_a nature_n in_o the_o second_o place_n he_o teach_v that_o we_o be_v spiritual_a so_o soon_o as_o we_o be_v renew_a by_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o same_o r._n of_o this_o manner_n of_o renew_v the_o apostle_n also_o speak_v say_v the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n set_v i_o free_a from_o the_o power_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n through_o jesus_n christ_n for_o what_o the_o law_n can_v not_o do_v by_o that_o part_n by_o which_o it_o be_v weak_a through_o the_o flesh_n that_o do_v god_n by_o send_v his_o own_o son_n in_o the_o similltude_n of_o sinful_a flesh_n even_o by_o sin_n condemn_v sin_n in_o the_o flesh_n 8._o rom._n 8._o that_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o law_n may_v be_v fulfil_v in_o we_o which_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n for_o they_o that_o be_v carnal_a be_v carnal_o mind_v but_o they_o that_o be_v spiritual_a be_v spiritual_a you_o mind_v to_o be_v carnallye_o mind_v be_v death_n but_o to_o be_v spiritual_o mind_v be_v life_n and_o peace_n because_o that_o the_o fleshly_a mind_n be_v enmity_n against_o god_n for_o it_o be_v not_o obedient_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n neither_o can_v be_v so_o then_o they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n can_v not_o please_v god_n but_o you_o be_v not_o in_o the_o flesh_n but_o in_o the_o spirit_n if_o so_o be_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o you_o m._n in_o this_o place_n the_o apostle_n attribute_v first_o to_o the_o flesh_n and_o then_o to_o the_o spirit_n certain_a thing_n which_o make_v very_o well_o for_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n he_o geve_v to_o the_o flesh_n two_o impossible_a thing_n the_o first_o be_v that_o it_o can_v obey_v the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o second_o that_o it_o can_v not_o please_v god_n hereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o same_o be_v under_o the_o power_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n as_o a_o enemy_n unto_o god_n and_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o letter_n which_o he_o here_o call_v the_o law_n can_v reform_v the_o same_o in_o so_o much_o that_o it_o stand_v altogether_o in_o need_n of_o the_o heavenlye_a power_n by_o which_o we_o be_v regenerate_v then_o he_o geve_v that_o to_o the_o spirit_n which_o fulfil_v the_o justification_n of_o the_o law_n that_o be_v to_o say_v which_o make_v man_n spiritual_a for_o the_o law_n require_v a_o spirit_n conformable_a regeneration_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o our_o regeneration_n and_o agree_v with_o the_o will_n of_o god_n such_o a_o will_n do_v the_o holy_a ghost_n begette_v the_o spirit_n therefore_o deliver_v from_o the_o power_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n and_o quicken_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v call_v the_o spirit_n of_o life_n c._n but_o it_o be_v very_o absurd_a which_o some_o have_v gather_v upon_o this_o place_n of_o christ_n name_o that_o we_o take_v our_o beginning_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n not_o only_o in_o body_n but_o also_o in_o soul_n for_o christ_n say_v nothing_o here_o but_o that_o we_o be_v all_o carnal_a according_a to_o our_o birth_n and_o that_o our_o nature_n do_v savour_n and_o taste_v of_o nothing_o but_o flesh_n in_o this_o respect_n that_o we_o be_v bear_v mortal_a man_n into_o the_o world_n for_o he_o do_v here_o simp_o distinguishe_v between_o the_o natural_a and_o supernatural_a gift_n 7._o marvel_v not_o that_o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o you_o must_v be_v bear_v again_o m._n this_o sentence_n may_v be_v refer_v as_o well_o to_o those_o thing_n which_o go_v before_o as_o to_o that_o which_o follow_v b._n as_o if_o the_o lord_n shall_v say_v thou_o have_v hear_v good_a cause_n and_o reason_n nicodemus_n why_o i_o say_v that_o no_o man_n can_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n except_o he_o be_v bear_v again_o marvel_v not_o therefore_o m._n but_o if_o we_o refer_v it_o to_o that_o which_o follow_v than_o we_o must_v understande_v that_o the_o lord_n go_v about_o to_o take_v from_o nicodemus_n by_o the_o similitude_n follow_v the_o maze_n which_o nicodemus_n have_v conceyve_v by_o the_o strangeness_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o hear_v c._n the_o which_o we_o must_v not_o so_o take_v as_o though_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v so_o notable_a a_o work_n of_o god_n in_o man_n regeneration_n to_o be_v little_o esteem_v of_o nicodemus_n but_o he_o will_v not_o have_v he_o to_o wonder_v jest_n his_o faith_n shall_v be_v hinder_v for_o many_o reject_v that_o which_o be_v difficile_a and_o hear_v to_o be_v understand_v as_o frivolous_a and_o vain_a to_o be_v short_a we_o must_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o we_o be_v frame_v again_o by_o god_n spirit_n and_o be_v make_v new_a man_n although_o the_o manner_n how_o the_o same_o be_v bring_v to_o pass_v be_v not_o reveal_v unto_o us._n you_o must_v be_v bear_v again_o m._n first_o of_o all_o our_o saviour_n christ_n exclude_v himself_o from_o this_o necessity_n of_o be_v bear_v again_o not_o because_o he_o have_v not_o the_o substance_n of_o flesh_n of_o the_o which_o he_o be_v bear_v but_o because_o he_o be_v not_o so_o bear_v of_o the_o same_o that_o he_o have_v need_n of_o regeneration_n as_o other_o mortal_a man_n have_v and_o have_v which_o be_v conceyve_v and_o bear_v under_o sin_n then_o he_o join_v nicodemꝰ_n a_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o a_o pharisey_n to_o the_o rest_n and_o include_v he_o to_o this_o necessity_n of_o reregeneration_n with_o all_o other_o man_n 7.16_o psal_n 53.4_o rom._n 1.12_o heb._n 7.16_o r._n for_o all_o have_v go_v out_o of_o the_o way_n all_o be_v become_v unprofitable_a there_o be_v none_o that_o do_v good_a no_o not_o one_o 1.35_o luke_n 1.35_o but_o christ_n by_o right_n be_v exempt_v from_o this_o corruption_n see_v that_o he_o be_v exempt_v from_o sinner_n whereupon_o the_o angel_n say_v unto_o mary_n that_o holy_a thing_n which_o shall_v be_v bear_v of_o thou_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god._n 8._o the_o wind_n blow_v whither_o it_o list_v and_o thou_o hear_v the_o sound_n thereof_o but_o can_v not_o tell_v whence_o it_o come_v and_o whither_o it_o go_v so_o be_v every_o
the_o father_n the_o spirit_n bear_v witness_n unto_o their_o spirit_n that_o they_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o cry_v in_o their_o heart_n abba_n father_n the_o reprobate_n 4.6_o rom._n 8.16_o gala._n 4.6_o although_o they_o seem_v to_o worship_n god_n yet_o they_o know_v not_o what_o true_a worship_n mean_v and_o do_v always_o abide_v in_o darkness_n although_o the_o light_n of_o the_o truth_n do_v shine_v more_o bright_a than_o the_o sun_n 22._o you_o worship_n you_o wot_v not_o what_o we_o know_v what_o we_o worship_v for_o salvation_n come_v of_o the_o jew_n you_o worship_v you_o wot_v not_o what_o m._n because_o he_o have_v say_v that_o the_o worship_n of_o both_o as_o well_o of_o the_o jew_n as_o of_o the_o samaritan_n shall_v cease_v lest_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v now_o better_a like_n of_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n at_o jerusalem_n than_o of_o that_o which_o the_o samaritan_n have_v in_o mount_n garizin_v bu_n or_o may_v seem_v to_o make_v the_o samaritan_n worship_n equal_a with_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o jew_n he_o put_v down_o a_o difference_n between_o they_o both_o in_o these_o word_n and_o that_o no_o trifle_n one_o but_o a_o difference_n of_o great_a weight_n c._o notwithstanding_o he_o devide_v the_o sum_n of_o his_o oration_n into_o two_o part_n in_o the_o first_o he_o condemn_v the_o form_n of_o worship_v god_n which_o the_o samaritan_n use_v as_o superstitious_a and_o erroneous_a and_o allow_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n among_o the_o jew_n as_o good_a and_o lawful_a and_o he_o add_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o difference_n namely_o because_o the_o jewishe_a worship_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o that_o of_o the_o samaritan_n have_v nothing_o certain_a from_o god_n mouth_n to_o maintain_v the_o same_o secondlye_o he_o declare_v that_o the_o rite_n which_o the_o jew_n have_v hitherto_o observe_v and_o keep_v shall_v short_o have_v a_o end_n b._n therefore_o because_o the_o worship_n which_o be_v at_o jerusalem_n at_o that_o time_n be_v stay_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o of_o the_o samaritan_n false_a by_o the_o imitation_n of_o the_o father_n without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o repress_v here_o the_o vain_a brag_a of_o the_o samaritan_n and_o affirm_v that_o they_o worship_v they_o know_v not_o what_o that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o worship_v god_n after_o a_o fashion_n of_o the_o which_o they_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o it_o be_v acceptable_a before_o god_n or_o no_o nay_o it_o be_v reject_v by_o plain_a oracle_n from_o god_n therefore_o he_o teach_v the_o woman_n that_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v for_o the_o samaritan_n to_o boast_v of_o their_o religion_n and_o to_o prefer_v the_o same_o before_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o jew_n c._n this_o sentence_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v worthy_a to_o be_v note_v by_o which_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v nothing_o rashelye_o or_o unaduised_o in_o religion_n because_o unless_o knowledge_n be_v present_a to_o direct_v we_o we_o worship_v god_n no_o long_o but_o a_o fantasy_n wherefore_o by_o this_o sentence_n overthrow_n good_a intention_n overthrow_n all_o good_a intention_n as_o man_n call_v they_o be_v overthrow_v for_o we_o know_v that_o man_n can_v do_v nothing_o else_o but_o err_v when_o they_o be_v lead_v by_o their_o own_o opinion_n and_o imagination_n without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n m._n for_o in_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n there_o be_v require_v not_o only_o a_o intention_n to_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n but_o it_o be_v needful_a also_o that_o we_o have_v knowledge_n to_o worship_n that_o we_o may_v be_v certain_a of_o our_o worship_n whether_o it_o please_v god_n or_o no._n for_o salvation_n come_v of_o the_o jew_n b._n some_o restrain_v this_o unto_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n ●_o rom._n 1._o ●_o be_v a_o jew_n by_o birth_n c._n but_o because_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o christ_n therefore_o prefer_v the_o jew_n because_o they_o worship_v one_o god_n alone_o and_o no_o unknowen_a god_n which_o reveal_v himself_o unto_o they_o and_o have_v choose_v they_o to_o be_v his_o people_n under_o the_o name_n of_o salvation_n that_o save_v manifestation_n or_o revelation_n which_o they_o have_v out_o of_o his_o word_n ought_v to_o be_v understand_v but_o why_o do_v he_o say_v that_o salvation_n come_v from_o the_o jew_n when_o as_o rather_o it_o be_v hide_v question_n and_o lay_v up_o in_o they_o that_o they_o alone_o may_v enjoy_v the_o same_o he_o seem_v to_o allude_v unto_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v before_o by_o the_o prophet_n 2.3_o answer_v esay_n 2.3_o that_o the_o law_n shall_v come_v from_o zion_n for_o therefore_o be_v they_o segregated_a for_o a_o time_n from_o other_o people_n that_o from_o they_o at_o the_o leangth_n the_o pure_a knowledge_n of_o god_n may_v flow_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n b._n for_o the_o gospel_n be_v derive_v and_o bring_v from_o the_o jew_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n 24.47_o lu._n 24.47_o and_o before_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o pure_a knowledge_n and_o doctrine_n of_o god_n flourish_v in_o no_o other_o nation_n than_o among_o the_o jew_n and_o it_o be_v likely_a whatsoever_o the_o wise_a man_n of_o the_o gentile_n have_v ever_o teach_v that_o the_o same_o be_v ever_o borrow_v of_o the_o jew_n 1.17_o rom._n 1.17_o c._n but_o this_o be_v the_o sum_n that_o if_o we_o will_v have_v our_o religion_n allowable_a before_o god_n we_o must_v stay_v the_o same_o upon_o the_o knowledge_n conceyve_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god._n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o must_v needs_o fall_v to_o idolatrye_a which_o forsake_v the_o word_n of_o god_n m._n moreover_o christ_n join_v himself_o with_o the_o worshipper_n of_o god_n who_o notwithstanding_o be_v not_o only_o worship_v as_o true_a god_n of_o the_o faithful_a but_o of_o the_o angel_n themselves_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o in_o that_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n and_o be_v make_v man_n in_o that_o respect_n he_o worship_v the_o father_n and_o be_v make_v obedient_a to_o he_o 2.8_o phili_n 2.8_o even_o to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n 23._o but_o the_o hour_n come_v and_o now_o be_v when_o the_o true_a worshipper_n shall_v worship_v the_o father_n in_o spyrite_n and_o in_o the_o truth_n for_o such_o the_o father_n also_o require_v to_o worship_v he_o the_o hour_n come_v c._n now_o follow_v the_o second_o part_n concern_v the_o abrogate_a of_o the_o legal_a worship_n m._n whereby_o he_o teach_v what_o be_v the_o worship_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n at_o the_o come_n whereof_o those_o old_a ceremony_n which_o be_v either_o at_o jerusalem_n in_o use_n or_o in_o any_o other_o place_n aught_o to_o cease_v and_o so_o he_o admonish_v that_o the_o time_n of_o reformation_n be_v fulfil_v 9.10_o heb._n 9.10_o therefore_o we_o must_v note_v here_o the_o antithesis_fw-la or_o comparison_n between_o the_o spirit_n and_o external_a figure_n as_o between_o shadow_n &_o the_o truth_n therefore_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v say_v to_o stand_v by_o the_o spyrite_n because_o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o inward_a faith_n of_o the_o heart_n which_o bring_v forth_o invocation_n secondlye_o the_o purity_n of_o conscience_n the_o deny_v of_o ourselves_o that_o we_o may_v be_v whole_o addict_v and_o bend_v to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n hereupon_o arise_v a_o question_n question_n do_v not_o the_o father_n worship_n god_n spyritual_o under_o the_o law_n i_o answer_v for_o so_o much_o as_o god_n be_v always_o one_o god_n answer_v answer_v he_o have_v not_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n allow_v any_o other_o worship_n than_o that_o which_o be_v spiritual_a which_o may_v agree_v with_o his_o nature_n of_o the_o which_o matter_n moses_n himself_o be_v a_o sufficient_a witness_n who_o declare_v in_o many_o place_n that_o this_o be_v the_o only_a end_n of_o the_o law_n that_o the_o people_n cleave_v unto_o god_n in_o faith_n 10.12_o deu._n 10.12_o and_o in_o a_o pure_a conscience_n but_o the_o prophet_n more_o plain_o have_v express_v this_o thing_n when_o they_o do_v severelye_o inveye_v against_o the_o hypocrisy_n of_o the_o people_n because_o they_o think_v that_o god_n be_v please_v with_o that_o external_a worship_n only_o 14_z psal_n 50.8_o esay_n 1_o 11._o mic._n 6.7_o amos._n 8_z 14_z with_o the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o which_o we_o may_v read_v in_o the_o fifteen_o chapter_n of_o matthew_n begin_v at_o the_o eight_o verse_n for_o such_o the_o father_n also_o require_v to_o worship_v he_o m._n this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o true_a worshipper_n worship_v the_o father_n in_o spyrite_n and_o in_o truth_n namely_o because_o so_o it_o
in_o the_o office_n of_o teach_v for_o in_o her_o word_n be_v contain_v a_o secréete_n antithesis_fw-la or_o comparison_n between_o christ_n and_o the_o prophet_n in_o that_o she_o make_v they_o to_o be_v but_o disciple_n as_o it_o be_v unto_o christ_n furthermore_o she_o mean_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o utmost_a end_n of_o wisdom_n beyond_o the_o which_o it_o be_v unlawful_a for_o any_o man_n to_o go_v i_o will_v to_o god_n that_o they_o which_o now_o boast_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o pyller_n of_o the_o church_n will_v but_o follow_v this_o sillye_o woman_n that_o they_o may_v be_v rather_o content_v with_o the_o simple_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n than_o to_o take_v unto_o themselves_o such_o authority_n as_o to_o join_v therewith_o their_o own_o invention_n bu_n for_o they_o make_v law_n to_o day_n which_o to_o morrow_n they_o abrogate_v and_o they_o think_v that_o they_o may_v do_v what_o they_o list_v themselves_o but_o this_o place_n proove_v that_o christ_n have_v teach_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o not_o frivolous_a or_o curious_a thing_n c._n whereupon_o come_v the_o popish_a and_o mahumetishe_a religion_n but_o only_o of_o those_o wicked_a forge_a invention_n which_o they_o have_v devise_v to_o fill_v up_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o profit_v the_o same_o as_o though_o without_o such_o dote_a dream_n it_o shall_v be_v lame_a but_o whosoever_o will_v be_v well_o instruct_v in_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n let_v he_o seek_v no_o other_o master_n neither_o admit_v they_o be_v ful_o persuade_v that_o treasure_n of_o all_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n be_v lay_v up_o in_o christ_n in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v hear_v and_o no_o other_o even_o as_o the_o father_n have_v command_v 26._o jesus_n say_v unto_o she_o i_o that_o speak_v unto_o thou_o be_o he_o m._n because_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o woman_n now_o lack_v nothing_o but_o this_o one_o thing_n that_o she_o shall_v know_v the_o instructor_n &_o heavenly_a teacher_n of_o all_o thing_n who_o come_v she_o look_v for_o to_o be_v now_o present_a therefore_o without_o all_o dissimulation_n he_o manife_v himself_o unto_o she_o say_v i_o that_o speak_v unto_o thou_o be_o he_o r._n by_o which_o voice_n the_o woman_n do_v not_o only_o receyve_v full_a justification_n by_o faith_n but_o be_v also_o certify_v in_o her_o conscience_n that_o this_o be_v that_o very_a christ_n which_o be_v righteousness_n 10.1_o 1._o cor._n 10.1_o sanctification_n and_o redemption_n this_o be_v that_o voice_n the_o which_o if_o christ_n speak_v in_o our_o heart_n it_o can_v be_v but_o we_o must_v feel_v most_o pass_o sweetness_n of_o god_n grace_n or_o shall_v be_v replenish_v with_o all_o heavenlye_a joy_n for_o it_o be_v the_o force_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o pacify_v the_o conscience_n terrify_v with_o the_o knowledge_n and_o feel_v of_o sin_n because_o it_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n to_o everye_o one_o that_o beléeve_v 1.16_o rom._n 1.16_o when_o the_o lord_n confess_v himself_o to_o the_o woman_n to_o be_v the_o messiah_n he_o offer_v himself_o no_o doubt_n to_o be_v her_o teacher_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v satisfy_v she_o conceyve_v hope_n therefore_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o there_o follow_v more_o plentiful_a doctrine_n to_o quench_v her_o thirst_n and_o he_o think_v he_o will_v show_v such_o a_o document_n and_o example_n of_o his_o grace_n upon_o this_o poor_a woman_n that_o he_o will_v manifest_o declare_v unto_o all_o man_n that_o he_o will_v never_o forsake_v his_o office_n where_o a_o teacher_n be_v require_v therefore_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v well_o instruct_v and_o teach_v who_o he_o find_v a_o prepare_a and_o apt_a disciple_n but_o they_o which_o disdain_n to_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o his_o lore_n as_o we_o see_v that_o many_o proud_a and_o profane_a man_n do_v or_o they_o which_o look_v for_o more_o perfect_v wisdom_n from_o some_o other_o as_o do_v the_o turk_n and_o papist_n be_v worthy_a to_o be_v drown_v in_o the_o labyrinth_n of_o all_o error_n m._n whereas_o he_o do_v not_o only_o say_v i_o be_o he_o but_o add_v also_o which_o speak_v unto_o thou_o he_o do_v it_o to_o this_o end_n that_o the_o woman_n may_v way_n and_o consider_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n of_o the_o which_o he_o have_v make_v mention_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o communication_n to_o who_o it_o be_v give_v not_o only_o to_o see_v and_o know_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o also_o to_o have_v he_o with_o she_o alone_o preach_v unto_o she_o with_o all_o gentleness_n the_o word_n of_o life_n a._n truelye_o a_o great_a and_o unspeakable_a gift_n of_o god_n that_o not_o only_o the_o son_n of_o god_n come_v into_o the_o world_n but_o also_o speak_v to_o sinner_n that_o they_o which_o reject_v he_o may_v have_v no_o excuse_n wherefore_o ●_o psa_fw-la 95._o ●_o if_o we_o will_v hear_v his_o voice_n let_v we_o not_o harden_v our_o heart_n ●_o deu._n 18._o ●_o lest_o god_n pour_v his_o vengeance_n upon_o we_o who_o have_v send_v so_o great_a a_o prophet_n unto_o we_o yea_o the_o lord_n of_o all_o prophet_n question_n m._n but_o here_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v why_o the_o lord_n do_v manifest_v himself_o in_o so_o plain_a word_n declare_v himself_o to_o be_v christ_n when_o as_o he_o forbid_v his_o disciple_n to_o declare_v the_o same_o to_o any_o man_n before_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n i_o answer_v answer_v answer_v although_o of_o itself_o it_o be_v not_o only_o indifferent_a but_o also_o good_a that_o he_o be_v know_v to_o be_v christ_n yet_o notwithstanding_o for_o certain_a cause_n he_o will_v not_o have_v the_o same_o make_v common_a unto_o many_o but_o unto_o certain_a select_a &_o special_a personne_n before_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n be_v come_v but_o these_o be_v not_o know_v unto_o the_o disciple_n therefore_o he_o forbid_v they_o to_o reveal_v this_o secréete_n to_o any_o notwithstanding_o what_o be_v the_o let_v why_o he_o do_v not_o manifest_v himself_o to_o those_o who_o he_o will_v see_v he_o know_v well_o enough_o &_o that_o from_o the_o beginning_n who_o they_o be_v which_o shall_v not_o believe_v on_o he_o 6.64_o joh._n 6.64_o there_o be_v certain_a dispensation_n of_o good_a thing_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v commit_v to_o every_o one_o but_o to_o those_o only_a which_o by_o their_o wisdom_n know_v how_o to_o bestow_v and_o direct_v all_o thing_n to_o the_o edification_n and_o profit_n of_o the_o elect_a wherefore_o we_o be_v here_o admonish_v not_o to_o require_v a_o account_n of_o the_o divine_a dispensation_n or_o dispose_n why_o the_o lord_n geve_v to_o one_o and_o deny_v to_o another_o the_o very_a self_n and_o same_o thing_n in_o itself_o very_o good_a bu_n by_o the_o very_a same_o reason_n we_o see_v that_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o talk_n declare_v himself_o to_o the_o woman_n to_o be_v the_o messiah_n for_o no_o doubt_n she_o have_v slyde_v away_o from_o he_o as_o account_v he_o to_o be_v but_o aproude_a and_o arrogaunt_a boaster_n of_o himself_o but_o now_o go_v forewarde_n by_o degree_n she_o not_o perceive_v whereabout_o he_o go_v he_o convey_v himself_o wholye_a into_o her_o breast_n and_o so_o make_v she_o beléeve_v 27._o and_o immediatelye_a come_v his_o disciple_n and_o marvel_v that_o he_o talk_v with_o the_o woman_n yet_o no_o man_n say_v what_o seek_v thou_o or_o why_o talk_v thou_o with_o she_o and_o immediate_o come_v his_o disciple_n m._n these_o thing_n be_v not_o add_v by_o the_o evangelist_n without_o great_a diligence_n for_o he_o mean_v hereby_o that_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n keep_v back_o the_o disciple_n which_o be_v absente_v so_o long_o as_o the_o lord_n be_v unknown_a to_o this_o woman_n lest_o they_o by_o any_o manner_n of_o mean_n may_v hynder_n their_o communication_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v himself_o manifest_a unto_o she_o they_o return_v for_o we_o may_v read_v how_o the_o disciple_n go_v about_o at_o one_o time_n or_o other_o 10.13_o math._n 19.13.14_o mar._n 10.13_o to_o hynder_n either_o by_o their_o importunitye_n or_o else_o by_o their_o undiscrete_a zeal_n the_o good_a work_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o the_o evangelist_n testify_v bu_n lest_o therefore_o by_o any_o manner_n of_o mean_n this_o godly_a conference_n may_v be_v break_v of_o and_o not_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n christ_n will_v not_o have_v his_o disciple_n return_v before_o he_o have_v manifest_v himself_o to_o the_o woman_n and_o marvel_v c._n there_o may_v be_v two_o cause_n of_o this_o admiration_n either_o because_o they_o be_v offend_v at_o the_o vileness_n of_o the_o personne_fw-fr or_o else_o because_o
and_o to_o bring_v peace_n to_o they_o that_o be_v far_o of_o 43._o after_o two_o day_n he_o depart_v thence_o and_o go_v away_o into_o galilee_n after_o two_o day_n b._n he_o abide_v two_o day_n only_o with_o the_o samaritan_n because_o as_o yet_o the_o hour_n be_v not_o come_v for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n more_o magnifycent_o to_o be_v reveal_v unto_o they_o first_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v offer_v to_o the_o jew_n and_o then_o by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o middle_a gate_n which_o divide_v other_o nation_n from_o the_o jew_n be_v to_o be_v break_v down_o and_o go_v away_o into_o galilee_n m._n the_o course_n or_o journey_n of_o christ_n be_v dyrect_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n from_o jewry_n to_o galilee_n but_o by_o the_o way_n as_o he_o go_v he_o be_v as_o it_o be_v stay_v abide_v two_o day_n in_o samaria_n notwithstanding_o after_o two_o day_n be_v pass_v he_o proceed_v in_o the_o same_o hereby_o let_v we_o learn_v to_o know_v the_o certainty_n of_o the_o course_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v begin_v and_o end_v according_a to_o god_n divine_a will_n 44._o for_o jesus_n himself_o testify_v that_o a_o prophet_n have_v no_o honour_n in_o his_o own_o country_n bu_n the_o evangelist_n brief_o and_o therefore_o obscurelye_o tell_v the_o departure_n of_o christ_n out_o of_o samaria_n but_o if_o we_o confer_v with_o the_o other_o evangelist_n it_o shall_v appear_v that_o he_o leave_v the_o city_n of_o nazareth_n go_v another_o way_n into_o galilee_n c._n for_o when_o he_o see_v that_o he_o be_v contemn_v in_o his_o country_n of_o nazareth_n he_o think_v good_a to_o turn_v out_o of_o the_o way_n to_o another_o place_n a._n concern_v this_o contempt_n read_v in_o the_o thirtéene_a chapter_n of_o matthew_n verse_n fiftye_a and_o seven_o mark_v the_o sixth_o verse_n four_o and_o in_o the_o twenty_o and_o four_o verse_n of_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o luke_n 45._o then_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v come_v into_o galilee_n the_o galilean_n receyve_v he_o when_o they_o have_v see_v all_o the_o thing_n that_o he_o do_v at_o jerusalem_n at_o the_o day_n of_o the_o feast_n for_o they_o go_v also_o to_o the_o feast_n day_n then_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v come_v m._n it_o appear_v that_o the_o evangelist_n endevour_v himself_o to_o show_v how_o christ_n find_v more_o favour_n and_o friendship_n among_o these_o abject_a and_o rude_a samaritan_n and_o galilean_n than_o among_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o excel_v other_o in_o the_o outward_a show_n of_o holiness_n even_o so_o the_o ignorant_a and_o rude_a sort_n of_o man_n be_v more_o ready_a to_o embrace_v the_o truth_n than_o they_o which_o boast_v themselves_o to_o know_v religion_n and_o to_o love_v godliness_n so_o that_o have_v make_v mention_v how_o the_o samaritan_n receyve_v christ_n he_o now_o commend_v the_o same_o also_o in_o the_o galeleans_n be_v a_o nation_n so_o much_o contemn_v that_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr boldlye_o say_v that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o ever_o any_o prophet_n come_v out_o of_o galilee_n 7.52_o john_n 7.52_o and_o for_o this_o cause_n they_o reject_v christ_n as_o a_o galilean_a c._n moreover_o whether_o this_o honour_n continue_a any_o long_a time_n which_o the_o galilean_n give_v unto_o christ_n it_o be_v not_o perfect_o know_v for_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o ready_a than_o the_o forget_n of_o god_n gift_n and_o benefit_n when_o they_o have_v see_v all_o the_o thing_n a._n of_o these_o sign_n it_o be_v speak_v before_o in_o the_o three_o and_o twenty_o verse_n of_o the_o second_o chapter_n these_o thing_n want_v not_o their_o fruit_n c._n for_o in_o seek_v to_o prepare_v a_o way_n to_o doctrine_n they_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o christ_n may_v be_v reverentlye_o think_v of_o for_o they_o go_v also_o to_o the_o feast_n m._n the_o evangelist_n put_v not_o down_o this_o without_o cause_n for_o beside_o that_o it_o apertain_v to_o the_o purpose_n it_o have_v also_o a_o commendation_n of_o the_o godliness_n of_o this_o people_n which_o so_o careful_o obey_v the_o law_n of_o god_n that_o dwell_v far_o of_o they_o come_v to_o jerusalem_n at_o the_o feast_n day_n appoint_v a._n hereof_o also_o we_o may_v take_v a_o example_n of_o the_o obedience_n and_o diligence_n which_o be_v due_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 46._o so_o jesus_n come_v again_o into_o cana_n of_o galilee_n where_o he_o turn_v the_o water_n into_o wine_n and_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a ruler_n who_o son_n be_v sycke_n at_o capernaum_n into_o cana_n of_o galilee_n a._n concern_v this_o city_n and_o the_o miracle_n there_o show_v read_v in_o the_o second_o chapter_n go_v before_o m._n the_o evangelist_n make_v mention_v of_o this_o in_o this_o place_n both_o to_o call_v to_o memory_n a_o fresh_a the_o miracle_n of_o the_o water_n turn_v into_o wine_n &_o also_o to_o declare_v that_o christ_n come_v for_o this_o cause_n into_o that_o place_n that_o he_o may_v as_o it_o be_v water_n and_o cause_n that_o to_o grow_v by_o show_v his_o power_n and_o light_v again_o which_o of_o late_a in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o miracle_n he_o have_v plant_v forget_v heavenly_a thing_n be_v soon_o forget_v for_o such_o be_v our_o nature_n and_o corruption_n that_o how_o soever_o we_o have_v attain_v and_o get_v heavenlye_a and_o good_a thing_n except_o they_o be_v afterward_o cause_v to_o prosper_v of_o all_o other_o thing_n they_o will_v most_o easylye_o be_v forget_v but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v evil_a and_o which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o our_o corruption_n the_o which_o although_o they_o be_v lightlye_o get_v they_o willing_o increase_v and_o go_v forward_o insomuch_o that_o it_o be_v true_o say_v the_o first_o beginning_n see_v thou_o withstand_v for_o remeedye_a to_o late_o thou_o do_v provide_v when_o evylles_n have_v the_o upper_a hand_n by_o long_a delay_n still_o to_o abide_v the_o which_o verse_n certain_o can_v be_v verify_v of_o good_a thing_n a._n for_o this_o cause_n christ_n himself_o a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n 12.1_o john_n 12.1_o go_v to_o see_v bethany_n where_o he_o have_v raise_v lazarus_n from_o the_o dead_a the_o apostle_n also_o be_v wont_a to_o see_v again_o the_o church_n which_o they_o have_v plant_v by_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n 15.41_o acts._n 15.41_o to_o confirm_v they_o in_o the_o faith_n which_o they_o have_v receyve_v m._n wherefore_o by_o these_o example_n let_v we_o learn_v to_o see_v and_o oversée_v again_o and_o by_o diligent_a husbandry_n to_o set_v forward_o either_o in_o ourselves_o or_o in_o other_o the_o beginning_n of_o good_a thing_n and_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a ruler_n bu_n these_o thing_n also_o which_o follow_v pertain_v to_o that_o which_o go_v before_o for_o they_o prove_v that_o jesus_n be_v even_o the_o very_a same_o who_o hitherto_o he_o preach_v himself_o to_o be_v and_o who_o the_o samaritan_n acknowledge_v and_o receyve_v namely_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o messiah_n and_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n &_o the_o lord_n of_o all_o thing_n even_o of_o life_n and_o death_n for_o this_o thing_n he_o most_o manifest_o declare_v by_o his_o present_a act_n m._n it_o appear_v that_o this_o ruler_n be_v one_o of_o the_o servant_n and_o lieftenaunt_n of_o herode_fw-la as_o may_v appear_v in_o the_o three_o and_o twenty_o of_o luke_n the_o seven_o verse_n c._n and_o the_o evangelist_n plain_o express_v his_o state_n &_o condition_n because_o in_o such_o a_o personage_n the_o miracle_n be_v more_o notable_a m._n for_o it_o come_v very_o seldom_o to_o pass_v that_o such_o a_o one_o beléeve_v in_o christ_n special_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o such_o a_o king_n as_o herode_fw-la be_v these_o example_n be_v very_o rare_a and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o nothing_o impossible_a wherefore_o we_o must_v not_o despair_v of_o such_o a._n but_o rather_o pray_v that_o the_o lord_n will_v bring_v they_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o truth_n even_o as_o the_o apostle_n exhort_v 2.1_o i_o tim._n 2.1_o for_o great_a be_v his_o mercy_n 47._o assoon_o as_o the_o same_o hear_v that_o jesus_n be_v come_v out_o of_o jewry_n into_o galilee_n he_o go_v unto_o he_o and_o beseech_v he_o that_o he_o will_v come_v down_o and_o heal_v his_o son_n for_o he_o be_v even_o at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n r._n the_o ruler_n be_v here_o describe_v to_o have_v a_o rude_a and_o a_o childyshe_a faith_n for_o he_o reque_v christ_n that_o he_o will_v go_v down_o to_o capernaum_n &_o heal_v his_o son_n in_o that_o he_o pray_v christ_n to_o heal_v his_o son_n it_o belong_v to_o a_o faith_n conceyve_v by_o those_o miracle_n
be_v lame_a and_o corrupt_a therefore_o they_o be_v here_o call_v the_o doer_n of_o good_a work_n who_o paul_n call_v zealous_a and_o lover_n of_o good_a work_n 2.14_o titus_z 2.14_o but_o this_o estimation_n and_o judgement_n depend_v upon_o the_o fatherly_a clemency_n and_o acceptation_n of_o our_o god_n who_o allow_v that_o fréelye_a for_o good_a which_o deserve_v to_o be_v reject_v as_o evil_a and_o unperfect_a m._n moreover_o here_o shall_v appear_v a_o double_a end_n of_o human_a thing_n in_o the_o resurrection_n even_o as_o also_o the_o very_a word_n of_o christ_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v and_o not_o without_o cause_n for_o there_o be_v a_o diversity_n among_o mortal_a man_n reprobate_a elect_a and_o reprobate_a some_o be_v elct_v othersome_a be_v reprobate_v to_o the_o end_n that_o everye_o part_n may_v have_v his_o right_a end_n therefore_o christ_n say_v that_o when_o he_o have_v gather_v together_o all_o nation_n before_o he_o he_o will_v separate_v they_o as_o a_o shepherd_n devide_v the_o sheep_n from_o the_o goat_n and_o will_v place_v the_o sheep_n on_o his_o right_a hand_n and_o the_o goat_n on_o his_o left_a hand_n 25.33_o mat._n 25.33_o wherefore_o let_v it_o not_o trouble_v any_o man_n if_o he_o shall_v see_v in_o this_o life_n tare_n mix_v with_o good_a feed_n and_o the_o stink_a goat_n mingle_v among_o the_o sheep_n when_o that_o hour_n of_o judgement_n shall_v come_v that_o be_v to_o say_v when_o these_o end_n that_o be_v appoint_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v come_v every_o man_n shall_v be_v separate_v and_o appoint_v to_o his_o proper_a end_n for_o the_o reprobate_n shall_v go_v into_o everlasting_a pain_n that_o be_v to_o the_o resurrection_n of_o judgement_n or_o condemnation_n and_o the_o just_a into_o eternal_a life_n that_o be_v to_o say_v into_o the_o resurrection_n of_o life_n for_o the_o angel_n shall_v go_v forth_o and_o shall_v separate_v the_o wicked_a from_o among_o the_o just_a and_o shall_v throw_v they_o into_o the_o furnace_n of_o hot_a burn_a fire_n where_o shall_v be_v weep_a and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n 13.41_o mat._n 13.41_o bu_n all_o man_n therefore_o enjoy_v the_o common_a natural_a and_o sensible_a life_n as_o well_o good_a as_o evell_a and_o they_o shall_v all_o rise_v from_o the_o same_o again_o notwithstanding_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o just_a judge_n christ_n jesus_n the_o condition_n and_o state_n of_o their_o life_n to_o come_v shall_v not_o be_v a_o like_a 5_o psal_n 5_o m._n for_o see_v he_o be_v a_o god_n which_o be_v not_o please_v with_o iniquity_n a._n when_o he_o have_v gather_v the_o wheat_n into_o his_o barn_n that_o be_v to_o say_v when_o he_o have_v call_v and_o receyve_v the_o faithful_a which_o embrace_v godliness_n to_o possess_v his_o kingdom_n for_o ever_o he_o shall_v burn_v the_o chaff_n that_o be_v unfrutefull_a man_n and_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n with_o unquenchable_a fire_n 3.12_o mat._n 3.12_o the_o which_o saint_n john_n express_v in_o these_o word_n he_o which_o overcom_v shall_v possess_v all_o thing_n and_o i_o will_v be_v his_o god_n and_o he_o shall_v be_v my_o son_n but_o the_o fearful_a and_o unbelieved_a and_o abominable_a 2d_o apoc._n 2d_o and_o murderer_n and_o whoremonger_n and_o sorcerer_n and_o idolater_n and_o all_o liar_n shall_v have_v their_o part_n in_o the_o lake_n which_o burn_v wiih_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n which_o be_v the_o second_o death_n for_o there_o shall_v enter_v into_o it_o no_o unclean_a thing_n neither_o whatsoever_o work_v abomination_n or_o make_v lie_n but_o they_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o lamb_n book_n of_o life_n the_o which_o also_o the_o scripture_n set_v forth_o in_o other_o word_n say_v 9.41_o ver._n 27_o esa_n 66.24_o mar._n 9.41_o their_o worm_n shall_v not_o dye_v and_o the_o fire_n shall_v not_o be_v quench_v m._n the_o which_o manifest_o make_v against_o those_o which_o pronounce_v general_o all_o man_n to_o be_v save_v for_o as_o everlasting_a life_n be_v lay_v up_o for_o the_o elect_a even_o so_o there_o wait_v for_o the_o reprobate_a that_o eternal_a fire_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o angel_n c._n ●_o mat._n 25._o ●_o and_o whereas_o the_o papist_n of_o these_o place_n gather_v that_o everlasting_a life_n be_v get_v by_o merit_n they_o may_v easy_o be_v refute_v for_o christ_n speak_v not_o only_o here_o of_o the_o cause_n of_o salvation_n life_n merit_n deserve_v not_o everlasting_a life_n but_o also_o put_v a_o note_n and_o difference_n between_o the_o elect_a and_o the_o reprobate_n the_o which_o he_o do_v to_o win_v and_o bring_v his_o servant_n to_o holiness_n and_o innocencye_n and_o we_o trulye_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o faith_n join_v with_o a_o desire_n to_o live_v well_o and_o upright_o justifi_v but_o do_v only_o teach_v that_o we_o can_v repose_v our_o trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o any_o thing_n else_o save_v in_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n a._n but_o concern_v this_o we_o have_v speak_v more_o at_o large_a .25.34_o mat._n 16.27_o and_o .25.34_o in_o our_o exposition_n of_o matthew_n 30._o i_o can_v of_o my_o own_o self_n do_v nothing_o as_o i_o hear_v i_o judge_v and_o my_o iudgeman_n be_v just_a because_o i_o seek_v not_o my_o own_o will_n but_o the_o will_n of_o the_o father_n which_o have_v send_v i_o i_o can_v not_o of_o my_o own_o self_n bu_n after_o the_o confirmation_n and_o probation_n of_o his_o divinity_n and_o that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n equal_a to_o the_o father_n in_o all_o thing_n he_o return_v to_o the_o proposition_n and_o occasion_n of_o the_o disputation_n from_o the_o which_o he_o be_v digress_v and_o gather_v all_o thing_n into_o a_o certain_a particular_a epiloge_n or_o conclusion_n m._n and_o because_o he_o have_v arrogate_a to_o himself_o many_o thing_n he_o show_v that_o he_o have_v do_v the_o same_o just_o and_o upon_o good_a consideration_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v b._n i_o have_v declare_v unto_o you_o what_o i_o be_o with_o the_o father_n and_o what_o i_o have_v receyve_v of_o he_o that_o i_o work_v all_o thing_n with_o the_o father_n and_o that_o with_o he_o i_o raise_v the_o dead_a to_o life_n by_o these_o thing_n you_o see_v that_o i_o be_o far_o from_o do_v any_o thing_n which_o be_v contrary_a or_o against_o he_o either_o by_o break_v the_o sabbath_n or_o else_o by_o orrogate_a to_o myself_o that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o he_o alone_o i_o confess_v that_o of_o myself_o i_o can_v do_v nothing_o be_v a_o man_n as_o you_o see_v these_o thing_n be_v give_v to_o i_o of_o the_o father_n he_o bring_v all_o thing_n to_o pass_v in_o i_o as_o i_o hear_v of_o he_o and_o as_o i_o know_v by_o experience_n so_o i_o judge_v in_o all_o thing_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o i_o i_o say_v nothing_o i_o do_v nothing_o which_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o father_n i_o know_v no_o part_n of_o my_o will_n which_o be_v not_o agree_v to_o the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n i_o desire_v nothing_o i_o go_v about_o nothing_o which_o be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o my_o father_n so_o far_o i_o be_o from_o profane_v the_o lord_n sabbath_n and_o that_o which_o be_v more_o from_o blaspheme_v he_o the_o which_o falselye_o you_o object_n against_o i_o c._n therefore_o christ_n speak_v not_o here_o of_o his_o bare_a divinity_n but_o as_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o our_o flesh_n he_o admonish_v we_o not_o to_o esteem_v of_o he_o according_a to_o the_o outward_a show_n because_o there_o be_v more_o in_o he_o than_o there_o be_v in_o a_o man_n secondlye_o we_o must_v see_v and_o consider_v with_o who_o he_o have_v to_o do_v his_o purpose_n be_v to_o refel_v the_o jew_n which_o seek_v to_o oppose_v or_o set_v he_o against_o god_n therefore_o he_o do_v deny_v that_o he_o do_v any_o thing_n as_o man_n because_o god_n which_o dwell_v in_o he_o be_v his_o guide_n &_o moderator_n this_o always_o we_o must_v remember_v that_o so_o often_o as_o christ_n speak_v himself_o he_o do_v only_o assume_v or_o take_v to_o himself_o that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o a_o man_n because_o he_o have_v respect_n unto_o the_o jew_n which_o wicked_o say_v that_o he_o be_v a_o private_a person_n and_o no_o better_a than_o one_o of_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o people_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n he_o refer_v to_o the_o father_n whatsoever_o be_v above_o man_n this_o word_n judgement_n as_o it_o do_v proper_o belong_v to_o doctrine_n so_o also_o it_o do_v appertain_v to_o the_o whole_a administration_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o he_o have_v the_o father_n his_o author_n in_o all_o thing_n who_o will_n be_v to_o he_o a_o rule_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o my_o judgement_n be_v just_a m._n this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v
of_o man_n if_o so_o be_v the_o work_n which_o thou_o do_v be_v altogether_o divine_a thou_o shall_v not_o fear_v the_o light_n but_o shall_v go_v with_o we_o to_o the_o feast_n that_o thou_o may_v be_v the_o more_o famous_a and_o honourable_a c._n for_o see_v thou_o be_v endue_v with_o so_o great_a virtue_n and_o power_n that_o thou_o can_v win_v fame_n by_o work_a sign_n and_o wonder_n lose_v not_o the_o same_o for_o thou_o do_v in_o vain_a spend_v and_o bestow_v here_o those_o gift_n which_o god_n have_v give_v unto_o thou_o where_o there_o be_v no_o meet_a witness_n and_o judge_n of_o the_o same_o b._n for_o he_o which_o will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o speak_v fréelye_o and_o open_o of_o he_o must_v do_v those_o noble_a act_n which_o he_o do_v open_o and_o not_o in_o secret_a therefore_o make_v thyself_o know_v unto_o the_o world_n b._n hereby_o we_o perceyve_v how_o great_a the_o dulness_n of_o man_n be_v in_o weigh_v and_o consider_v the_o work_n of_o god._n for_o the_o kinsman_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n will_v never_o have_v speak_v thus_o except_o they_o have_v utterlye_o contemn_v and_o despise_v those_o manifest_a sign_n and_o proof_n of_o his_o divine_a power_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v receyve_v &_o reverence_v with_o great_a admiration_n that_o which_o we_o here_o in_o this_o place_n concern_v christ_n do_v daily_o happen_v for_o they_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v friendelye_o boath_n for_o nearness_n of_o blood_n and_o also_o for_o other_o cause_n be_v more_o gréevous_a and_o troublesome_a to_o the_o child_n of_o god_n than_o stranger_n oftentimes_o for_o they_o be_v the_o instrument_n of_o satan_n to_o draw_v and_o entice_v they_o which_o will_v scincerelye_o and_o faithful_o serve_v god_n one_o while_n to_o ambition_n another_o whil_n to_o covetousness_n to_o the_o love_n of_o the_o world_n and_o to_o such_o like_a concern_v the_o which_o matter_n read_v more_o in_o our_o exposition_n of_o matthew_n but_o christ_n sharp_o repel_v such_o satan_n teach_v we_o by_o his_o example_n 10.36_o mat._n 10.36_o not_o to_o follow_v the_o foolish_a will_n and_o mind_n of_o brethren_n 5._o for_o his_o brethren_n believe_v not_o in_o he_o r._n now_o in_o this_o place_n that_o appear_v to_o be_v true_a 4.44_o joh._n 4.44_o which_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v in_o a_o neither_o place_n a_o prophet_n have_v no_o honour_n in_o his_o own_o country_n b._n hereby_o also_o we_o learn_v that_o all_o be_v not_o godly_a which_o appertain_v unto_o christ_n concern_v the_o flesh_n for_o what_o do_v it_o profit_v these_o man_n who_o the_o evangelist_n noat_v to_o be_v unbeliever_n that_o they_o be_v the_o lord_n brethren_n c_o for_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n do_v geve_v unto_o they_o a_o perpetual_a note_n of_o infamy_n because_o they_o be_v convince_v by_o so_o many_o testimony_n of_o work_n do_v not_o for_o all_o that_o believe_v therefore_o as_o say_v saint_n paul_n whosoever_o desier_v to_o be_v in_o christ_n must_v be_v a_o new_a creature_n i7_n 2._o cor._n 5_o i7_n b._n for_o in_o christ_n jesus_n neither_o circumcision_n avayl_v any_o thing_n nor_o uncircumcision_n but_o a_o new_a creature_n c._n for_o they_o which_o geve_v themselves_o whole_o unto_o god_n be_v unto_o christ_n in_o stead_n of_o father_n mother_n and_o brethren_n as_o for_o other_o he_o put_v they_o from_o he_o wherefore_o to_o ridiculous_a be_v the_o superstition_n of_o the_o papist_n who_o in_o the_o virgin_n marie_n all_o other_o thing_n set_v a_o part_n only_o extol_v the_o honour_n of_o blood_n as_o though_o christ_n do_v not_o reprehend_v the_o woman_n which_o cry_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o multitude_n bless_a be_v the_o womb_n that_o bear_v thou_o 11.27_o luk._n 11.27_o and_o the_o pap_n that_o give_v thou_o suck_v for_o christ_n answer_v nay_o rather_o bless_v be_v they_o which_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o keep_v it_o b._n for_o the_o inward_a man_n alone_a frame_v after_o god_n be_v acceptable_a unto_o god_n and_o bring_v forth_o the_o undoubted_a fruit_n of_o righteousness_n m._n let_v we_o note_n also_o in_o this_o place_n how_o that_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o come_v not_o by_o any_o prerogative_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n for_o the_o faithful_a be_v bear_v neither_o of_o blood_n neither_o of_o the_o will_n of_o flesh_n nor_o of_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o of_o god._n also_o flesh_n and_o blood_n reveal_v not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 1.13_o joh._n 1.13_o but_o the_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n a._n let_v we_o remember_v therefore_o what_o the_o lord_n answer_v to_o his_o kinsman_n james_n and_o john_n to_o sit_v on_o my_o right_a hand_n 17_o mat._n i6_n 17_o and_o on_o my_o left_a be_v not_o i_o to_o give_v but_o it_o shall_v happen_v to_o those_o for_o who_o it_o be_v prepare_v of_o my_o father_n 6._o then_o jesus_n say_v unto_o they_o my_o time_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v but_o your_o time_n be_v always_o ready_a chr._n some_o interpret_v this_o of_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n death_n but_o not_o apt_o c._n for_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o time_n of_o his_o departure_n and_o affirm_v that_o he_o differ_v from_o his_o kinsman_n in_o this_o that_o they_o may_v without_o danger_n come_v forth_o at_o all_o hour_n in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o world_n because_o they_o have_v the_o world_n their_o friend_n but_o he_o have_v good_a cause_n to_o fear_n for_o that_o the_o world_n be_v his_o enemy_n and_o he_o geve_v they_o to_o understande_v that_o they_o give_v evil_a advice_n in_o a_o know_a thing_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v bu_n my_o time_n to_o go_v thither_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v when_o time_n shall_v serve_v i_o shall_v need_v none_o of_o your_o admonition_n i_o know_v what_o &_o when_o to_o do_v every_o thing_n how_o also_o and_o when_o i_o must_v be_v make_v know_v to_o the_o world_n do_v not_o depend_v on_o man_n counsel_n but_o upon_o my_o father_n decree_n m._n you_o may_v ascend_v to_o jerusalem_n when_o you_o will_v but_o i_o have_v not_o always_o that_o liberty_n you_o need_v not_o weight_n your_o time_n because_o you_o may_v go_v when_o you_o will_v but_o as_o for_o i_o i_o must_v attend_v my_o time_n because_o all_o time_n to_o i_o be_v not_o alike_o c._n we_o be_v also_o here_o teach_v how_o dilligentlye_o we_o ought_v to_o beware_v that_o we_o do_v all_o thing_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n and_o in_o due_a time_n bu_n and_o also_o to_o take_v heed_n that_o we_o do_v nothing_o rashelye_o without_o warrant_v from_o god_n he_o talk_v with_o we_o in_o his_o word_n we_o consult_v therefore_o with_o he_o when_o we_o ask_v counsel_n at_o his_o word_n when_o we_o pray_v and_o when_o we_o crave_v his_o holy_a spirit_n serve_v time_n ought_v to_o be_v consider_v according_a as_o occasion_n serve_v m._n every_o man_n therefore_o aught_o to_o consider_v his_o time_n and_o not_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n out_o of_o due_a time_n but_o patient_o to_o tarry_v for_o the_o opportunity_n of_o a_o convenient_a time_n the_o lord_n will_v not_o go_v with_o his_o brethren_n to_o jerusalem_n because_o his_o time_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v at_o another_o time_n he_o command_v passeover_n to_o be_v prepare_v for_o he_o at_o jerusalem_n say_v i_o will_v keep_v the_o pasover_n at_o thy_o house_n with_o my_o disciple_n and_o to_o his_o mother_n he_o say_v 26.18_o mat._n 26.18_o my_o hour_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v let_v everye_o one_o of_o we_o therefore_o learn_v by_o this_o example_n 2.4_o john_n 2.4_o to_o frame_v ourselves_o according_a to_o the_o convenientnesse_n of_o the_o time_n 12.11_o rom_n 12.11_o a._n even_o as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n teach_v we_o but_o so_o notwithstanding_o that_o we_o swerve_v not_o the_o breadth_n of_o a_o nail_n from_o our_o call_n 7._o the_o world_n can_v hate_v you_o but_o i_o it_o hate_v because_o i_o testify_v of_o it_o that_o the_o work_v thereof_o be_v evil_a c._n the_o word_n be_v here_o take_v for_o man_n not_o regenerate_v which_o retain_v their_o nature_n and_o disposition_n whosoever_o therefore_o be_v not_o regenerate_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v pronounce_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o be_v enemy_n unto_o he_o and_o why_o sure_o because_o they_o condemn_v his_o work_n wherefore_o if_o we_o will_v stand_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o christ_n we_o must_v confess_v that_o the_o whole_a nature_n of_o man_n be_v so_o vicious_a and_o corrupt_a that_o there_o can_v proceed_v from_o the_o same_o no_o right_a sincere_a or_o good_a thing_n m._n christ_n may_v have_v say_v the_o high_a priste_n scribe_n and_o pharisées_fw-fr can_v hate_v you_o but_o they_o hate_v i_o but_o because_o his_o brethren_n have_v use_v this_o word_n world_n
galilee_n when_o other_o go_v it_o may_v seem_v that_o his_o own_o conscience_n do_v accuse_v he_o or_o else_o that_o he_o tarry_v behind_o for_o want_n of_o manly_a courage_n and_o in_o that_o he_o do_v not_o go_v with_o his_o brethren_n as_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o do_v at_o other_o time_n he_o seem_v to_o bear_v unto_o they_o some_o privy_a grudge_n but_o christ_n be_v content_v patient_o to_o abide_v these_o thing_n have_v the_o testimony_n of_o a_o innocent_a conscience_n the_o which_o also_o he_o declare_v to_o his_o brother_n when_o he_o show_v unto_o they_o the_o cause_n why_o he_o be_v hate_v of_o the_o world_n let_v we_o learn_v therefore_o by_o this_o example_n not_o to_o be_v much_o careful_a and_o trouble_v for_o any_o thing_n that_o man_n judge_v of_o we_o so_o that_o we_o know_v ourselves_o to_o be_v innocent_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o do_v declare_v the_o same_o to_o those_o that_o seek_v it_o as_o we_o see_v our_o lord_n and_o savioure_n do_v here_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o we_o shall_v escape_v the_o sinister_a and_o wrong_a judgement_n of_o the_o reprobate_n in_o this_o world_n the_o which_o be_v every_o where_n at_o hand_n which_o way_n soever_o we_o turn_v we_o or_o what_o soever_o we_o leave_v undo_v 4_o 1._o cor._n 4_o whereupon_o the_o apostle_n say_v it_o be_v a_o small_a matter_n for_o i_o to_o be_v judge_v of_o you_o or_o of_o man_n judgement_n 5.21_o rom_n 12.17_o 1._o thes_n 5.21_o for_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n that_o judge_v i_o a._n but_o we_o ought_v not_o hereupon_o to_o neclect_n our_o fame_n or_o good_a report_n for_o we_o ought_v to_o provide_v for_o honest_a thing_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o all_o man_n and_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a so_o much_o as_o in_o we_o lie_v to_o live_v peceable_a with_o all_o man_n and_o to_o obstayne_v from_o all_o show_n of_o evell_a but_o see_v we_o can_v obey_v god_n except_o we_o displease_v man_n we_o must_v void_a of_o care_n despise_v all_o favour_n of_o man_n to_o obey_v god_n alone_a 1._o gallath_n 1._o if_o say_v the_o apostle_n i_o shall_v please_v man_n i_o be_v not_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n c._n for_o see_v there_o be_v nothing_o more_o miserable_a then_o to_o be_v draw_v away_o from_o christ_n curse_a be_v that_o peace_n which_o be_v so_o preciouse_a unto_o we_o that_o for_o the_o same_o we_o shall_v renounce_v christ_n 10._o but_o as_o soon_o as_o his_o brethren_n be_v go_v uppe_o then_o go_v he_o also_o uppe_o to_o the_o feast_n not_o open_o but_o as_o it_o be_v privy_o r._n here_o be_v two_o thing_n to_o be_v note_v for_o in_o that_o christ_n go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n at_o the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n he_o show_v obedience_n of_o his_o father_n commandment_n and_o in_o that_o he_o ascend_v privy_o he_o show_v the_o wisdom_n of_o faith_n 23.17_o exo._n 23.17_o for_o it_o become_v a_o christian_n man_n to_o fulfil_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n with_o simple_a obedience_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o to_o take_v heed_n with_o good_a advice_n that_o he_o tempt_v not_o the_o lord_n escue_v rashness_n ought_v to_o be_v escue_v for_o rashness_n as_o well_o in_o other_o thing_n as_o in_o divine_a matter_n bring_v great_a inconvenience_n with_o it_o a._n he_o may_v have_v withstand_v his_o adversary_n as_o be_v aforesaid_a with_o manifest_a power_n but_o that_o shall_v have_v little_o profit_v us._n r._n therefore_o by_o this_o deed_n he_o teach_v we_o that_o if_o so_o be_v we_o at_o any_o time_n be_v in_o like_a peril_n we_o shall_v with_o a_o strong_a faith_n fulfil_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n beware_v we_o tempt_v he_o not_o i8_n luke_n 21_o i8_n be_v sertayn_o persuade_v that_o not_o one_o hear_v of_o our_o head_n shall_v perish_v without_o the_o will_n of_o our_o heavenly_a father_n in_o that_o christ_n do_v now_o assende_v it_o be_v not_o repugnaunt_a with_o that_o that_o he_o say_v to_o his_o brethren_n that_o he_o will_v not_o ascend_v for_o than_o he_o declare_v that_o he_o will_v not_o fulfil_v their_o evell_a affection_n nor_o ascend_v with_o they_o to_o the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n until_o such_o time_n as_o the_o necessity_n of_o his_o duty_n do_v constrain_v he_o open_o to_o show_v himself_o but_o now_o opportunity_n be_v offer_v he_o ascend_v alone_a without_o the_o company_n of_o his_o kinsman_n who_o he_o refuse_v as_o carnal_a to_o use_v in_o the_o business_n of_o the_o gospel_n c._n therefore_o on_o the_o one_o part_n the_o evangelist_n set_v before_o our_o eye_n the_o kinsman_n of_o our_o savioure_n who_o according_a to_o the_o common_a manner_n of_o man_n seem_v to_o like_a of_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n but_o yet_o notwithstanding_o be_v friend_n to_o the_o world_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o wicked_a and_o therefore_o do_v walk_v void_a of_o care_n on_o the_o other_o part_n he_o set_v before_o we_o christe_o himself_o who_o be_v hate_v of_o the_o world_n come_v privy_o into_o the_o city_n and_o abide_v in_o galilee_n until_o the_o necessity_n of_o his_o office_n which_o he_o have_v receyve_v of_o his_o father_n constrain_v he_o open_o to_o show_v himself_o 11._o then_o seek_v he_o the_o jew_n at_o the_o feste_fw-la and_o say_v where_o be_v he_o bu_n in_o these_o word_n the_o evangelist_n reprehend_v the_o judgemente_n of_o the_o common_a people_n which_o they_o have_v concern_v christ_n and_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v confirm_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n in_o like_a dissension_n lest_o they_o shall_v faint_v and_o be_v discourage_v by_o the_o like_a judgemente_n and_o forsake_v the_o truth_n c._n by_o the_o jew_n he_o understand_v the_o common_a peple_n which_o be_v now_o accustom_v these_o two_o year_n to_o hear_v christ_n require_v he_o when_o they_o see_v he_o not_o as_o they_o be_v wont_a for_o when_o they_o say_v where_o be_v he_o they_o mean_v a_o man_n know_v unto_o they_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o this_o demand_n show_v that_o they_o be_v not_o hitherto_o well_o affect_v but_o hang_v always_o in_o doubt_n notwitstand_v there_o be_v some_o which_o by_o the_o name_n jew_n in_o this_o place_n understande_v not_o the_o people_n but_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o high_a priest_n scrib_n pharisées_fw-fr and_o elder_n of_o the_o people_n be_v even_o the_o very_a same_o of_o who_o saint_n john_n make_v mention_v in_o the_o first_o verse_n go_v before_o say_v because_o the_o jew_n seek_v to_o kill_v he_o m._n and_o they_o say_v that_o it_o be_v opprobrious_a speech_n which_o the_o jew_n use_v here_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v have_v say_v where_o be_v that_o galilean_a where_o be_v that_o seducer_n and_o deceyver_n of_o the_o people_n where_o be_v that_o blasphemer_n where_o be_v that_o enemy_n of_o the_o law_n and_o breake●_n of_o the_o sabbath_n for_o the_o do_v not_o vouchsafe_v to_o name_v he_o even_o as_o saul_n do_v to_o david_n when_o he_o say_v 27._o 1._o king_n 20_o 27._o where_o be_v the_o son_n of_o isai_n but_o the_o former_a exposition_n be_v more_o probable_a 12._o and_o much_o murmur_a of_o he_o be_v there_o among_o the_o people_n for_o some_o say_v he_o be_v god_n other_o say_v nay_o but_o he_o deceyve_v the_o people_n r._n here_o we_o see_v the_o great_a abase_v of_o our_o lord_n and_o savioure_n christ_n for_o he_o be_v judge_n of_o quick_a and_o dead_a yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o hide_v the_o same_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v judge_v of_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o people_n whereupon_o there_o be_v diverse_a judgemente_n give_v of_o he_o c._n for_o whersoever_o man_n gather_v themselves_o together_o in_o company_n privy_a vardit_z and_o judgement_n be_v give_v of_o christ_n bu_n many_o of_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o people_n which_o have_v hear_v his_o word_n and_o see_v his_o miracle_n say_v that_o jesus_n be_v a_o good_a man_n and_o that_o his_o cause_n be_v good_a and_o therefore_o in_o his_o absence_n ought_v not_o so_o to_o be_v misreport_v of_o on_o the_o contrary_a part_n the_o scribe_n and_o pharisées_fw-fr with_o their_o adherent_n both_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v a_o good_a man_n and_o also_o affirm_v that_o his_o cause_n be_v evell_a for_o they_o say_v he_o deceive_v the_o people_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o use_v a_o new_a and_o unwonted_a kind_n of_o teach_v which_o far_o differ_v from_o that_o which_o we_o have_v receyve_v from_o our_o forefather_n r._n and_o thus_o christ_n seem_v to_o some_o a_o good_a man_n and_o to_o othersome_a a_o seducer_n of_o the_o people_n and_o to_o some_o such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v possess_v with_o a_o dovell_a every_o one_o in_o judge_v of_o christ_n declare_v his_o wisdom_n for_o it_o
people_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o they_o will_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o same_o by_o the_o which_o word_n they_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o both_o piety_n and_o also_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n therefore_o it_o be_v no_o rare_a and_o unwonted_a thing_n that_o hypocrite_n be_v far_o from_o all_o true_a sincere_a piety_n and_o from_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n shall_v challenge_v unto_o themselves_o both_o of_o they_o these_o man_n be_v so_o blind_a that_o they_o have_v no_o consideration_n of_o their_o parent_n which_o come_v between_o abraham_n and_o they_o be_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n idolater_n but_o consider_v only_o the_o first_o original_n of_o their_o nation_n and_o boast_v of_o the_o covenaunt_n which_o god_n once_o make_v with_o they_o so_o bold_o also_o be_v the_o papist_n at_o this_o day_n who_o although_o they_o be_v the_o posterity_n of_o idolater_n and_o idolater_n themselves_o yet_o nevertheless_o because_o of_o the_o pure_a beginning_n of_o christiamisme_n and_o the_o sign_n of_o god_n covenaunt_n do_v say_v even_o as_o these_o jew_n do_v we_o be_v not_o bear_v of_o fornication_n 42._o jesus_n say_v unto_o they_o if_o god_n be_v your_o father_n truelye_o you_o will_v love_v i_o for_o i_o procee_v forth_o and_o come_v from_o god_n neither_o come_v i_o of_o myself_o but_o he_o send_v i_o bu_n christ_n refall_v this_o wicked_a bold_a and_o impudent_a boast_v of_o the_o jew_n and_o for_o certain_a cause_n convince_v they_o of_o a_o lie_n m._n and_o he_o reason_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o true_a son_n after_o this_o manner_n c._n whosoever_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n know_v and_o love_v his_o first_o beget_v son_n but_o you_o hate_v i_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o you_o shall_v boast_n your_o self_n to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n this_o place_n be_v diligent_o to_o be_v noated_a that_o there_o be_v no_o piety_n no_o fear_n of_o god_n where_o christ_n be_v reject_v false_a and_o counterfayte_v religion_n boldelye_o boast_v of_o god_n but_o what_o agreement_n can_v they_o have_v with_o the_o father_n which_o disagree_v with_o the_o only_a son_n what_o knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v this_o where_o his_o lively_a image_n be_v reject_v in_o vain_a therefore_o do_v the_o jew_n in_o vain_a do_v the_o turk_n boast_n of_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n when_o as_o with_o obstinate_a mind_n they_o reject_v all_o knowledge_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n c._n when_o christ_n say_v that_o he_o come_v from_o god_n he_o give_v the_o jew_n to_o understande_v that_o they_o can_v object_v any_o thing_n unto_o he_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n and_o that_o no_o terrestrial_a or_o human_a thing_n can_v be_v find_v in_o his_o doctrine_n and_o office_n for_o he_o do_v not_o speak_v here_o of_o divine_a essence_n as_o some_o think_v but_o of_o his_o office_n 43._o why_o do_v you_o not_o know_v my_o speech_n even_o because_o you_o can_v know_v my_o word_n he_o add_v another_o argument_n whereby_o he_o evident_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o child_n of_o god_n c._n and_o withal_o cast_v in_o their_o tooth_n their_o obstinacye_n which_o be_v such_o that_o they_o can_v not_o abide_v to_o hear_v he_o speak_v hereupon_o he_o gather_v that_o they_o be_v carry_v headelonge_v with_o divelishe_a malice_n and_o outrage_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v m._n they_o which_o be_v the_o true_a son_n of_o god_n can_v be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o voice_n of_o their_o father_n house_n bu_n if_o therefore_o you_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n what_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o you_o know_v not_o my_o voice_n he_o speak_v unto_o you_o by_o i_o child_n common_o know_v their_o parent_n voice_n even_o as_o sheep_n know_v the_o voice_n of_o their_o shéepehearde_n but_o see_v you_o know_v not_o my_o doctrine_n which_o appertain_v to_o my_o father_n it_o be_v out_o of_o all_o controversy_n that_o you_o be_v none_o of_o my_o father_n child_n 44._o you_o be_v of_o your_o father_n the_o devil_n and_o the_o lust_n of_o your_o father_n will_v you_o do_v he_o be_v a_o murderer_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o abide_v not_o in_o the_o truth_n because_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n in_o in_o he_o when_o he_o speak_v a_o lie_n he_o speak_v of_o his_o own_o for_o he_o be_v a_o liar_n and_o the_o father_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n you_o be_v of_o the_o father_n m._n thus_o far_o forth_o he_o have_v prove_v that_o they_o be_v neither_o the_o son_n of_o abraham_n nor_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o which_o they_o false_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o and_o now_o consequentlye_o he_o show_v who_o be_v their_o true_a father_n c._n and_o that_o which_o before_o he_o have_v speak_v obscurelye_o he_o now_o open_o discover_v namely_o that_o they_o be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o devyll_n murderer_n the_o devil_n a_o murderer_n but_o we_o must_v understand_v here_o the_o antithesis_fw-la or_o comparison_n that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v such_o mortal_a enemy_n to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n except_o they_o have_v a_o father_n which_o be_v a_o perpetual_a enemy_n to_o god_n m._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v now_o you_o pretend_v god_n to_o be_v your_o father_n when_o as_o indeed_o you_o be_v neither_o the_o true_a son_n of_o abraham_n nor_o of_o god_n in_o one_o word_n i_o will_v show_v you_o who_o be_v your_o father_n who_o you_o express_v even_o as_o his_o very_a son_n boath_n in_o disposition_n and_o in_o manner_n yea_o who_o be_v such_o as_o i_o find_v you_o to_o be_v who_o soever_o you_o fain_v yourselves_o to_o be_v and_o whatsoever_o you_o will_v be_v account_v of_o in_o this_o world_n you_o have_v the_o devil_n to_o your_o father_n c._n and_o he_o call_v they_o the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n not_o because_o they_o do_v imitate_v he_o but_o also_o because_o by_o his_o impulsion_n they_o be_v carry_v to_o war_n against_o christ_n for_o as_o we_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n not_o only_o because_o we_o be_v like_a unto_o he_o but_o also_o because_o he_o do_v govern_v we_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o because_o christ_n do_v live_v and_o grow_v in_o we_o that_o he_o may_v make_v we_o like_a unto_o the_o image_n of_o his_o father_n so_o again_o the_o devil_n be_v say_v to_o be_v their_o father_n who_o mind_n he_o blind_v and_o who_o heart_n he_o instigate_v and_o prick_v forward_o to_o all_o unrighteousness_n in_o who_o also_o he_o rule_v mighty_o excercise_v his_o tirannye_n m._n the_o manichee_n have_v abuse_v this_o place_n and_o such_o like_a insomuch_o that_o they_o have_v make_v two_o beginning_n one_o of_o evil_a thing_n and_o the_o other_o of_o good_a thing_n c._n but_o in_o vain_a for_o as_o when_o the_o scripture_n call_v we_o the_o child_n of_o god_n the_o same_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o original_n of_o substance_n but_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spyrite_n which_o do_v regenerate_v we_o to_o newness_n of_o life_n even_o so_o this_o say_n of_o christ_n do_v nothing_o appertain_v to_o the_o original_n of_o substance_n but_o to_o the_o corruption_n of_o nature_n the_o cause_n and_o original_n whereof_o be_v the_o fall_n of_o man_n in_o that_o therefore_o man_n be_v bear_v the_o child_n of_o the_o devyll_n we_o must_v not_o impute_v the_o same_o to_o the_o creation_n but_o to_o the_o wickedness_n of_o sin_n christ_n prove_v this_o of_o the_o effect_n because_o they_o be_v prove_v of_o their_o own_o accord_n and_o mind_n to_o follow_v the_o devyll_n m._n after_o this_o manner_n he_o call_v judas_n the_o devyll_n as_o we_o hear_v before_o in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n verse_n three_o score_n and_o ten_o not_o in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n but_o in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o traitor_n a._n and_o saint_n john_n say_v in_o his_o epistle_n that_o cain_n be_v of_o that_o wicked_a because_o he_o slay_v his_o brother_n 3.12_o 1._o iho._n 3.12_o and_o he_o affirm_v he_o which_o sin_v to_o be_v of_o the_o devyll_n all_o which_o thing_n be_v speak_v not_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o creation_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o imitation_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v refer_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o natural_a and_o substantial_a original_n he_o be_v a_o murderer_n from_o the_o beginning_n c._n christ_n express_v what_o those_o desire_n be_v which_o the_o ungodly_a of_o their_o own_o accord_n and_o mind_n follow_v and_o he_o repeat_v two_o kind_n namely_o cruelty_n and_o li_v in_o the_o which_o thing_n the_o jew_n wear_v too_o like_a to_o the_o devil_n in_o that_o he_o say_v he_o be_v a_o murderer_n he_o geve_v we_o to_o understande_v that_o he_o seek_v man_n destruction_n for_o so_o soon_o as_o man_n be_v create_v
the_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o it_o be_v better_a for_o man_n to_o disagree_v among_o themselves_o then_o for_o all_o general_o to_o depart_v from_o godliness_n wherefore_o so_o often_o as_o dissension_n do_v arise_v we_o must_v consider_v the_o original_n of_o they_o m._n for_o they_o do_v amiss_o which_o at_o this_o day_n blame_v the_o gospel_n as_o the_o cause_n of_o dissension_n and_o division_n chr._n for_o all_o schism_n be_v not_o by_o and_o by_o evell_a even_o as_o all_o concord_n be_v not_o always_o good_a for_o we_o must_v judge_v of_o the_o truth_n by_o the_o cause_n but_o concern_v this_o matter_n read_v the_o ten_o of_o mathewe_n begin_v at_o the_o thirty_o four_o verse_n 17._o they_o speak_v unto_o the_o blind_a man_n again_o what_o say_v thou_o of_o he_o because_o he_o have_v open_v thy_o eye_n he_o say_v he_o be_v a_o prophet_n bu_n lest_o the_o danger_n of_o the_o schism_n and_o strife_n shall_v be_v more_o increase_v and_o spread_v abroad_o the_o wicked_a do_v subtle_o break_v of_o the_o attrication_n c._n but_o the_o more_o diligent_a enquiry_n that_o they_o make_v the_o more_o mighty_o do_v the_o power_n of_o god_n declare_v itself_o for_o they_o do_v even_o as_o if_o on_o shall_v go_v about_o to_o put_v out_o the_o flame_n with_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o mouth_n therefore_o so_o often_o as_o we_o see_v the_o wicked_a to_o seek_v all_o mean_n to_o oppress_v god_n truth_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v be_v afeard_a or_o to_o careful_a for_o the_o success_n because_o by_o that_o mean_v they_o do_v most_o of_o all_o kindle_v the_o light_n bu_n by_o this_o question_n they_o do_v as_o it_o be_v supply_v a_o answer_n and_o do_v prescribe_v unto_o he_o what_o he_o shall_v say_v as_o thus_o because_o he_o have_v open_v my_o eye_n on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n he_o have_v break_v the_o sabbath_n day_n and_o a_o breaker_n of_o the_o law_n can_v be_v the_o friend_n of_o god_n by_o this_o answer_n they_o may_v have_v stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o those_o which_o have_v conceive_v some_o mean_a and_o indifferent_a opinion_n concern_v christ_n as_o thus_o what_o talk_v you_o of_o the_o power_n of_o jesu_n see_v that_o he_o have_v such_o a_o evil_a opinion_n of_o he_o which_o have_v feel_v his_o power_n ▪_o c._n but_o the_o lord_n in_o this_o thing_n disappoint_v they_o for_o in_o that_o a_o rude_a and_o ignorant_a man_n void_a of_o all_o fear_n nothing_o regard_v their_o threatening_n affirm_v christ_n to_o be_v a_o prophet_n we_o must_v needs_o impute_v the_o same_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o this_o trust_n may_v be_v as_o it_o be_v another_o miracle_n wherefore_o if_o he_o which_o as_o yet_o know_v not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v so_o bold_o and_o fréelye_o confess_v christ_n to_o be_v a_o prophet_n how_o be_v they_o to_o be_v discommend_v which_o through_o fear_n do_v either_o deny_v he_o or_o else_o hold_v their_o peace_n when_o they_o know_v that_o he_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n and_o shall_v come_v from_o thence_o to_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n therefore_o see_v this_o blind_a man_n do_v not_o quench_v this_o spark_n of_o knowledge_n we_o must_v endeavour_n ourself_o that_o a_o true_a and_o perfect_a confession_n may_v shine_v out_o of_o the_o full_a brightness_n which_o have_v illuminate_v our_o heart_n bv_o wherefore_o although_o the_o blind_a man_n have_v not_o attain_v to_o the_o full_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o be_v in_o great_a peril_n plainelye_o confess_v the_o truth_n concern_v his_o opinion_n which_o he_o have_v conceive_v of_o the_o lord_n for_o the_o hebrew_n call_v a_o prophet_n a_o man_n of_o god_n a_o holy_a man_n a_o true_a and_o faithful_a man_n m._n how_o far_o therefore_o do_v he_o differre_fw-la from_o those_o which_o say_v this_o man_n be_v not_o of_o god_n for_o he_o keep_v not_o the_o sabbath_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v call_v the_o most_o holy_a and_o learned_a man_n and_o be_v the_o head_n and_o rulars_n of_o the_o people_n but_o as_o for_o this_o man_n he_o be_v a_o base_a beggar_n a_o idiot_n and_o one_o ignorant_a of_o the_o scripture_n a._n thus_o that_o which_o be_v precious_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n 16.15_o joh._n 16.15_o be_v a_o abomination_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n 18._o but_o the_o jew_n do_v not_o believe_v the_o man_n how_o that_o he_o have_v be_v blind_a and_o receyve_v his_o sight_n untyll_o they_o call_v the_o father_n and_o mother_n of_o he_o that_o have_v receive_v his_o sight_n bu_n the_o pharisées_fw-fr being_n disappoint_v of_o their_o hope_n and_o not_o know_v also_o how_o to_o bring_v their_o purpose_n to_o pass_v be_v mad_a angry_a and_o in_o chafe_n with_o themselves_o not_o know_v which_o way_n to_o turn_v they_o notwithstanding_o at_o the_o leangth_n they_o find_v out_o a_o new_a way_n by_o which_o they_o geve_v assault_v a_o fresh_a against_o the_o truth_n c._n it_o be_v marvel_n that_o the_o evangelist_n say_v that_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o miracle_n which_o christ_n have_v show_v if_o any_o man_n ask_v a_o reason_n why_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o they_o be_v voluntarilye_o blind_a for_o what_o do_v keep_v they_o from_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o evident_a work_n of_o god_n which_o be_v before_o their_o eye_n nay_o what_o do_v let_v they_o be_v plain_o convince_v why_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o which_o they_o see_v to_o be_v true_a but_o only_o the_o inward_a malice_n of_o their_o heart_n which_o do_v so_o blind_v they_o that_o they_o can_v not_o see_v and_o also_o the_o effectual_a work_n of_o satan_n the_o same_o also_o paul_n teach_v to_o be_v fulfil_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o evangelist_n say_v iij_o 1_o ▪_o cor._n 4._o iij_o if_o the_o gospel_n be_v hide_v it_o be_v hide_v to_o they_o that_o be_v lose_v in_o who_o the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n have_v blind_v the_o mind_n of_o they_o which_o believe_v not_o etc._n etc._n we_o be_v warn_v by_o such_o example_n let_v we_o learn_v not_o to_o bring_v let_n and_o stay_v to_o ourselves_o to_o drive_v we_o from_o the_o faith_n m._n they_o command_v the_o parent_n of_o the_o blind_a man_n to_o be_v call_v hope_v it_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o be_v make_v afeard_a they_o will_v deny_v he_o which_o be_v blind_a either_o to_o be_v their_o son_n either_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v bear_v blind_a or_o else_o will_v one_o way_n or_o other_o obscure_a the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n r._n but_o the_o more_o they_o seek_v to_o obscure_v it_o the_o more_o they_o make_v the_o same_o to_o be_v know_v for_o the_o will_n and_o work_n of_o god_n be_v ever_o wont_a to_o hynder_n the_o subtle_a practice_n of_o the_o wicked_a resy_v god_n will_n can_v be_v resy_v it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o joseph_n shall_v be_v lord_n over_o his_o brethren_n whereupon_o this_o his_o will_n prevayl_v against_o the_o wicked_a practice_n of_o his_o brethren_n so_o hardly_o can_v the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v restrain_v 37.28_o gen._n 37.28_o bu_n the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v of_o mardochaeus_n who_o aman_n hate_v to_o the_o death_n for_o the_o more_o that_o aman_n seek_a to_o deiecte_v he_o the_o more_o high_o do_v god_n seek_v to_o exalt_v he_o iij.u._n have_v iij.u._n and_o thus_o truth_n be_v very_o like_a unto_o the_o palm_n tree_n the_o which_o the_o more_o it_o be_v press_v down_o the_o more_o strong_o it_o arise_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v therefore_o by_o the_o inquisition_n of_o the_o phariseis_n that_o all_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o miracle_n be_v more_o exactlye_o discuss_v than_o if_o no_o inquisition_n at_o all_o have_v be_v make_v for_o that_o which_o hitherto_o seem_v obscure_a doubtful_a and_o not_o suffcientlye_o prove_v be_v now_o make_v most_o evident_a and_o manifest_a and_o without_o all_o doubt_n and_o controversy_n c._n the_o evangelist_n call_v those_o which_o be_v the_o ruler_n of_o the_o people_n the_o jew_n by_o a_o figure_n call_v synecdoche_n 19_o and_o they_o ask_v he_o say_v be_v this_o your_o son_n who_o you_o say_v be_v bear_v blind_a how_o do_v he_o now_o see_v then_o m._n it_o seem_v that_o these_o word_n be_v severe_o speak_v and_o by_o authority_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v take_v heed_n what_o you_o report_v you_o babble_n and_o prate_n much_o concern_v one_o who_o you_o say_v be_v your_o son_n which_o be_v bear_v blind_a and_o which_o have_v now_o receive_v his_o sight_n do_v you_o know_v he_o if_o this_o be_v he_o tell_v we_o how_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o he_o shall_v receyve_v his_o sight_n bu_n they_o demand_v three_o thing_n the_o
faith_n they_o give_v thanks_n unto_o god_n and_o obey_v his_o will_n but_o god_n hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o jesu_n for_o i_o have_v receyve_v my_o sight_n therefore_o jesus_n can_v be_v a_o wicked_a and_o ungodlye_a man_n c._n they_o be_v deceyve_v which_o think_v that_o this_o beggar_n speak_v according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o people_n for_o this_o word_n sinner_n here_o also_o sygnify_v as_o it_o do_v a_o little_a before_o a_o wicked_a and_o ungodlye_a man_n and_o this_o the_o scripture_n teach_v always_o that_o god_n hear_v none_o but_o such_o as_o call_v upon_o he_o with_o a_o true_a and_o sincere_a heart_n for_o see_v that_o faith_n only_o make_v we_o to_o have_v access_n unto_o god_n god_n faith_n make_v we_o to_o have_v access_n unto_o god_n it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o the_o wicked_a can_v come_v unto_o he_o yea_o he_o testify_v that_o he_o do_v abhor_v their_o prayer_n even_o as_o he_o do_v boath_n their_o sacrifice_n for_o he_o invit_v the_o child_n of_o god_n unto_o he_o by_o a_o singular_a privilege_n xi_o esay_n 1i_fw-la xi_o and_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n only_o which_o cry_v in_o our_o heart_n abba_n 4.5_o rom._n 8_o i5_n galat._n 4.5_o father_n to_o be_v short_a no_o man_n be_v apt_a to_o pray_v unto_o god_n but_o he_o which_o have_v his_o heart_n purge_v by_o faith_n but_o the_o wicked_a as_o they_o profane_v the_o holy_a name_n of_o god_n in_o their_o prayer_n even_o so_o they_o deserve_v rather_o to_o be_v punish_v for_o their_o sacrilege_n i6_n psa_fw-la 50_o i6_n than_o to_o obtain_v any_o thing_n that_o appertain_v to_o their_o soul_n health_n as_o we_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o fyft_v psalm_n therefore_o this_o beggar_n do_v not_o reason_n amiss_o that_o christ_n come_v from_o god_n because_o he_o hear_v and_o grant_v his_o petition_n 32._o since_o the_o world_n begin_v be_v it_o not_o hear_v that_o any_o man_n open_v the_o eye_n of_o one_o that_o be_v bear_v blind_a c._n hereby_o this_o beggar_n do_v amplyfie_v the_o excelencye_n of_o the_o miracle_n because_o so_o far_o as_o ever_o any_o man_n can_v remember_v the_o like_a deed_n be_v never_o hear_v of_o to_o be_v do_v by_o any_o man_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v wicked_a and_o unthankful_a which_o do_v willing_o w●ncke_v at_o the_o manifest_a work_n of_o god_n m._n and_o very_o warelye_o and_o wyselye_o he_o say_v not_o from_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n the_o eye_n of_o one_o that_o have_v be_v bear_v blind_a have_v not_o be_v open_v but_o from_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n it_o have_v not_o be_v hear_v etc._n etc._n for_o he_o do_v not_o dispute_v whether_o god_n ever_o open_v the_o eye_n of_o one_o that_o be_v bear_v blind_a but_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v never_o hear_v that_o any_o man_n do_v such_o a_o deed_n for_o this_o be_v the_o drift_n of_o his_o argument_n that_o by_o this_o strange_a and_o unwonted_a miracle_n by_o which_o a_o man_n open_v the_o eye_n of_o one_o that_o be_v bear_v blind_a it_o be_v evident_o prove_v that_o this_o man_n be_v of_o god_n whereupon_o also_o he_o add_v say_v 33._o if_o this_o man_n be_v not_o of_o god_n he_o can_v do_v nothing_o c._n therefore_o he_o gather_v that_o he_o be_v send_v of_o god_n because_o he_o be_v endue_v with_o so_o great_a power_n of_o the_o spyrite_n of_o god_n to_o win_v credit_n to_o himself_o and_o to_o his_o doctrine_n m._n by_o these_o word_n therefore_o he_o confound_v that_o which_o the_o phariseis_n have_v speak_v this_o man_n be_v not_o of_o god_n for_o he_o keep_v not_o the_o sabbath_n day_n 34._o they_o answer_v and_o say_v unto_o he_o thou_o be_v altogether_o bear_v in_o sin_n and_o do_v thou_o teach_v we_o and_o they_o cast_v he_o out_o they_o answer_v &_o say_v bu_n the_o phariseis_n be_v out_o of_o all_o hope_n that_o this_o beggar_n may_v either_o be_v corrupt_v or_o make_v afeard_a whereby_o he_o may_v cease_v from_o preach_v of_o jesu_n furthermore_o our_o rabbin_n and_o doctor_n be_v ashamed_a that_o a_o beggar_n and_o ydyot_n have_v stop_v their_o mouth_n whereupon_o they_o come_v to_o the_o extremity_n and_o last_o point_n the_o which_o be_v the_o cruel_a contempt_n of_o all_o order_n of_o doctrine_n and_o admonition_n and_o the_o condemnation_n and_o execration_n of_o the_o truth_n 18.3_o prou._n 18.3_o for_o when_o the_o wicked_a come_v then_o come_v contempt_n and_o with_o the_o vile_a man_n reproach_n c._n and_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o they_o allude_v unto_o his_o blindness_n even_o as_o it_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o proud_a man_n to_o vex_v such_o as_o be_v in_o misery_n and_o calamitye_n as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v thou_o vile_a beggar_n and_o impudent_a knave_n dare_v thou_o be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o teach_v we_o our_o doctor_n &_o our_o rabbin_n our_o labour_n be_v to_o seek_v out_o and_o to_o teach_v that_o which_o we_o desire_v and_o it_o be_v thy_o part_n to_o hearken_v unto_o our_o commandment_n we_o ought_v to_o be_v hear_v and_o it_o become_v thou_o to_o hold_v thy_o peace_n we_o be_v holy_a man_n but_o thou_o be_v a_o miserable_a sinner_n bu_n for_o by_o thy_o wickedness_n and_o heinous_a offence_n thou_o have_v provoke_v god_n vengeance_n to_o light_n upon_o thou_o thou_o vile_a wretch_n insomuch_o that_o thou_o be_v strike_v with_o blindness_n have_v be_v just_o punish_v of_o god_n who_o have_v open_o plague_v thou_o and_o have_v mark_v thou_o as_o one_o abominable_a and_o for_o all_o man_n to_o take_v heed_n of_o r._n and_o dare_v thou_o be_v such_o a_o one_o dispute_n with_o we_o concern_v the_o holiness_n of_o religion_n and_o of_o faith_n m._n and_o be_v thou_o so_o impudent_a that_o thou_o be_v not_o afeard_a in_o our_o presence_n to_o reason_n of_o divine_a matter_n even_o as_o if_o thou_o be_v a_o holy_a just_a and_o learned_a man_n and_o we_o but_o ydiote_n and_o sinner_n r._n avaunt_o with_o thy_o madness_n thou_o gross_a knave_n who_o it_o beseem_v not_o to_o talk_v with_o us._n c._n therefore_o they_o do_v scorn_n and_o reproach_n he_o even_o as_o if_o he_o have_v bring_v a_o mark_n and_o show_v token_n of_o his_o wickedness_n even_o from_o his_o mother_n womb_n for_o diverse_a of_o the_o scribe_n be_v persuade_v that_o man_n soul_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v depart_v this_o life_n go_v into_o new_a boddye_n and_o in_o they_o suffer_v punishment_n for_o their_o former_a offence_n hereupon_o these_o man_n think_v that_o this_o man_n which_o before_o be_v blind_a be_v then_o defile_v with_o his_o sin_n this_o preposterouse_a opinion_n ought_v to_o teach_v we_o to_o beware_v that_o we_o always_o measure_v not_o man_n sin_n with_o the_o scourge_n and_o punishment_n of_o god_n as_o we_o hear_v before_o in_o the_o second_o verse_n m._n let_v we_o also_o note_n the_o pride_n of_o these_o doctoures_fw-la and_o rabbin_n this_o blind_a man_n have_v with_o modesty_n render_v a_o reason_n of_o his_o opinion_n concern_v christ_n by_o which_o he_o beléeve_v that_o he_o come_v as_o a_o prophet_n send_v of_o god_n unto_o the_o which_o he_o be_v provoke_v by_o the_o demand_n of_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr also_o he_o answer_v that_o which_o be_v agreeable_a with_o the_o opinion_n of_o all_o good_a man_n concern_v god_n contain_v nothing_o in_o it_o which_o be_v either_o arrogantlye_o speak_v or_o impertinent_a to_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o which_o he_o be_v demand_v and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr condemn_v this_o modesty_n of_o impudence_n because_o it_o be_v boath_n free_a and_o also_o repugnaunt_a to_o their_o malice_n as_o though_o he_o have_v be_v so_o arrogant_a that_o he_o will_v have_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o have_v teach_v godly_a &_o learned_a man_n in_o matter_n concern_v faith_n to_o many_o such_o doctor_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v at_o this_o day_n who_o judge_v it_o to_o be_v great_a impudencye_n if_o any_o simple_a and_o ignorant_a man_n though_o he_o be_v ask_v do_v fréelye_o utter_v his_o opinion_n before_o they_o concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n they_o judge_v it_o to_o be_v contumelious_a to_o their_o dignity_n and_o order_n asthough_o they_o be_v such_o as_o ought_v only_o to_o be_v hear_v and_o that_o other_o also_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v hear_v and_o as_o though_o god_n be_v not_o wont_a to_o give_v to_o unlearned_a and_o simple_a man_n more_o faith_n fear_v of_o he_o and_o religion_n than_o to_o these_o great_a doctor_n wherehy_o he_o may_v suppress_v the_o pride_n of_o man_n c._n wherefore_o see_v god_n ought_v always_o to_o be_v hear_v by_o whosoever_o he_o speak_v unto_o we_o let_v we_o learn_v not_o to_o condemn_v they_o that_o god_n may_v always_o find_v we_o apt_a
man_n for_o filthy_a lucer_n sake_n to_o extinguish_v the_o gospel_n but_o we_o have_v here_o a_o sheaphearde_v set_v before_o we_o not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n yea_o neither_o peter_n nor_o paul_n but_o christ_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n bu_n furthermore_o they_o which_o gather_v upon_o this_o place_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o day_n a_o mutual_a consent_n and_o agreement_n among_o man_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n insomuche_o that_o none_o shall_v remain_v a_o infidel_n or_o ungodlye_a do_v err_v and_o know_v not_o the_o scripture_n neither_o do_v consider_v what_o be_v the_o state_n and_o drift_n of_o this_o place_n r._n again_o there_o be_v some_o which_o gather_v of_o this_o place_n that_o after_o the_o last_o day_n of_o judgement_n all_o both_o good_a and_o evell_a shall_v be_v gather_v together_o into_o one_o place_n of_o eternal_a life_n but_o the_o opinion_n of_o these_o man_n be_v most_o foolish_a for_o than_o shall_v the_o sheep_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o goat_n 25.46_o mat._n 25.46_o and_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o sheep_n shall_v be_v one_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o goat_n another_o as_o the_o scripture_n plainelye_o testify_v 17._o therefore_o do_v my_o father_n love_v i_o because_o i_o lie_v down_o my_o life_n that_o i_o may_v take_v it_o again_o b._n this_o be_v a_o digression_n by_o which_o he_o declare_v how_o he_o will_v geve_v his_o life_n for_o his_o sheep_n not_o that_o he_o ought_v death_n any_o thing_n but_o because_o he_o will_v wyllinglye_o suffer_v the_o same_o that_o he_o may_v take_v his_o life_n unto_o he_o again_o by_o his_o own_o power_n whereupon_o it_o come_v that_o he_o say_v herein_o be_v the_o love_n of_o my_o father_n declare_v in_o i_o herein_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o i_o be_o love_v of_o my_o father_n that_o i_o geve_v my_o life_n to_o take_v it_o to_o i_o again_o for_o this_o be_v divine_a power_n the_o which_o be_v see_v in_o i_o who_o will_v not_o think_v thereby_o that_o i_o be_o great_o love_v of_o my_o father_n c._o there_o be_v also_o another_o far_a cause_n why_o the_o father_n love_v the_o son_n for_o this_o voice_n be_v not_o hear_v in_o vain_a from_o heaven_n this_o be_v my_o well_o belove_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v but_o because_o for_o our_o sake_n also_o he_o be_v make_v man_n and_o because_o the_o father_n love_v he_o to_o this_o end_n that_o he_o may_v reconcile_v we_o unto_o he_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o he_o affirm_v that_o he_o be_v therefore_o love_a because_o our_o salvation_n be_v dear_a unto_o he_o than_o his_o own_o life_n bu_n hereby_o certainlye_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o son_n die_v with_o the_o good_a will_n of_o his_o father_n and_o that_o the_o will_n and_o purpose_n of_o they_o boathe_v be_v all_o one_o in_o redeem_n the_o world_n c._n this_o therefore_o be_v a_o wonderful_a commendation_n of_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n which_o geve_v we_o just_a occasion_n to_o wonder_v at_o he_o in_o that_o he_o do_v not_o only_o pour_v out_o his_o love_n into_o we_o but_o also_o refer_v the_o same_o unto_o we_o as_o to_o the_o final_a cause_n and_o verilye_o christ_n have_v no_o need_n to_o take_v upon_o he_o our_o flesh_n in_o the_o which_o he_o shall_v be_v belove_v but_o only_o that_o in_o redeem_n of_o we_o it_o may_v be_v a_o pledge_n of_o his_o fatherly_a mercy_n m._n and_o it_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n that_o the_o lord_n make_v mention_v here_o of_o his_o fatherlye_o goodness_n for_o he_o go_v about_o to_o beat_v down_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o phariseis_n which_o go_v about_o to_o persuade_v the_o blind_a man_n that_o christ_n be_v not_o of_o a_o god_n but_o a_o sinner_n that_o therewithal_o they_o may_v persuade_v that_o whatsoever_o he_o speak_v or_o do_v be_v not_o acceptable_a unto_o god_n that_o i_o may_v take_v it_o to_o i_o again_o c._n because_o the_o hear_n of_o christ_n death_n may_v not_o a_o little_a grieve_v the_o disciple_n and_o may_v also_o greatelye_a assay_v their_o faith_n he_o comfort_v they_o with_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o resurrection_n which_o shall_v straight_o after_o follow_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o he_o do_v not_o dye_v to_o be_v swallow_v up_o of_o death_n but_o that_o he_o may_v by_o and_o by_o after_o arise_v a_o conqueror_n of_o death_n r._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v therefore_o have_v god_n the_o father_n glorify_v i_o above_o all_o creature_n because_o i_o be_o obedient_a to_o he_o 2.8_o phil._n 2.8_o to_o the_o death_n even_o to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n for_o because_o i_o have_v descend_v into_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o be_o make_v the_o most_o abiecte_a and_o contemptible_a perform_v therefore_o i_o will_v ascend_v above_o all_o the_o heaven_n and_o god_n shall_v geve_v unto_o i_o a_o name_n which_o be_v above_o all_o name_n and_o shall_v great_o honour_v i_o m._n and_o whereas_o he_o arise_v not_o straight_o after_o he_o have_v suffer_v the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n but_o tarry_v untyll_o the_o third_o day_n it_o be_v do_v to_o take_v away_o the_o suspicion_n of_o a_o feign_a death_n and_o to_o set_v forth_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o unwonted_a and_o miraculous_a resurrection_n therefore_o in_o these_o word_n he_o declare_v that_o his_o death_n be_v not_o after_o the_o common_a manner_n of_o man_n but_o dispensatorye_n because_o life_n shall_v present_o follow_v death_n c._n and_o it_o become_v we_o at_o this_o day_n so_o to_o think_v of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n christ_n resurrection_n of_o christ_n that_o therewithal_o we_o remember_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o resurrection_n so_o we_o know_v that_o he_o be_v life_n because_o he_o have_v fight_v with_o death_n have_v mighty_o overcome_v the_o same_o and_o make_v a_o noble_a triumph_n a._n for_o by_o death_n he_o have_v destroy_v he_o which_o have_v power_n of_o death_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o devil_n i5_n heb._n 2_o i5_n and_o have_v make_v they_o free_v which_o all_o their_o life_n time_n be_v mere_a bondslave_n 18._o no_o man_n take_v it_o from_o i_o but_o i_o lie_v it_o down_o of_o myself_o i_o have_v power_n to_o lay_v it_o down_o and_o have_v power_n to_o to_o take_v it_o again_o this_o commandment_n have_v i_o receyve_v of_o my_o father_n no_o man_n take_v it_o from_o i_o m._n if_o so_o be_v to_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n signifi_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o dye_v even_o as_o to_o take_v away_o the_o life_n be_v to_o kill_v how_o then_o say_v he_o that_o no_o man_n take_v away_o the_o same_o from_o he_o do_v not_o the_o jew_n kill_v he_o yes_o verilye_o if_o then_o they_o kill_v he_o they_o also_o take_v away_o his_o life_n from_o he_o in_o deed_n they_o take_v it_o away_o but_o they_o do_v not_o extorte_n it_o from_o he_o by_o violence_n and_o against_o his_o will_n for_o they_o can_v not_o have_v take_v the_o same_o from_o he_o except_o he_o will_v wyllinglye_o have_v dye_v hereupon_o he_o add_v this_o say_v but_o i_o lie_v it_o down_o of_o myself_o the_o which_o be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o if_o he_o will_v kill_v himself_o a._n as_o the_o wicked_a jew_n object_v unto_o he_o m._n but_o because_o the_o lay_n down_o of_o his_o life_n be_v not_o in_o any_o man_n power_n but_o he_o himself_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n lay_v down_o the_o same_o c._n therefore_o he_o do_v not_o only_o deny_v that_o man_n have_v power_n in_o themselves_o to_o kill_v unless_o he_o suffer_v they_o but_o also_o exempt_v himself_o from_o all_o force_n of_o necessity_n but_o it_o be_v otherwise_o with_o we_o who_o of_o necessity_n be_v subject_a to_o death_n by_o reason_n of_o sin_n christ_n also_o himself_o be_v bear_v a_o mortal_a man_n but_o this_o be_v voluntarye_a submission_n and_o not_o violent_a constraint_n this_o therefore_o pertain_v to_o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o disciple_n lest_o when_o they_o shall_v see_v he_o short_o after_o to_o be_v carry_v unto_o death_n they_o may_v be_v discourage_v as_o though_o he_o have_v be_v oppress_v of_o his_o enemy_n but_o may_v know_v that_o the_o same_o come_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o wonderful_a providence_n of_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v suffer_v death_n to_o redeem_v the_o flock_n and_o this_o be_v always_o a_o profitable_a doctrine_n that_o therefore_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o satisfaction_n for_o sin_n because_o it_o be_v a_o voluntarye_a sacrifice_n according_a to_o that_o say_n of_o paul_n by_o the_o obedience_n of_o one_o man_n many_o become_v sinner_n i_o have_v power_n to_o lay_v it_o down_o r._n this_o be_v even_o the_o same_o which_o he_o say_v before_o name_o that_o he_o therefore_o suffer_v because_o so_o it_o
to_o he_o of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o whole_a cause_n belong_v as_o well_o to_o god_n as_o to_o himself_o and_o for_o this_o cause_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o any_o man_n shall_v pull_v the_o sheep_n out_o of_o his_o hand_n which_o his_o father_n have_v give_v he_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v my_o hand_n be_v my_o father_n hand_n and_o my_o sheep_n be_v my_o father_n sheep_n no_o man_n can_v take_v they_o from_o i_o because_o no_o man_n can_v take_v they_o out_o of_o my_o father_n hand_n c._n a_o notable_a place_n by_o which_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o the_o elect_a be_v no_o less_o sure_a than_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v invincible_a hereby_o also_o we_o gather_v how_o vain_a the_o trust_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v which_o rest_v upon_o free_a will_n upon_o their_o own_o strength_n and_o upon_o the_o merit_n of_o work_n christ_n have_v far_o otherwise_o teach_v those_o that_o be_v he_o that_o they_o may_v know_v that_o they_o be_v in_o this_o world_n as_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o a_o wood_n and_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o théeve_n and_o furthermore_o that_o they_o be_v naked_a and_o subject_a to_o the_o prey_n and_o carry_v in_o their_o own_o bosom_n the_o dagger_n and_o cause_n of_o death_n that_o bear_v themselves_o bold_a upon_o the_o only_a custody_n and_o defence_n of_o god_n they_o may_v walk_v secure_o without_o fear_n 30._o and_o i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o m._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o do_v nothing_o in_o this_o matter_n i_o have_v nothing_o i_o can_v do_v nothing_o i_o give_v nothing_o and_o i_o be_o nothing_o of_o myself_o without_o my_o father_n all_o that_o be_v i_o be_v he_o and_o whatsoever_o he_o have_v or_o do_v it_o be_v i_o and_o he_o work_v the_o same_o by_o i_o we_o do_v all_o one_o thing_n neither_o be_v we_o divide_v but_o christ_n do_v not_o dispute_v here_o concern_v the_o unity_n of_o substance_n but_o of_o the_o consent_n and_o agreement_n which_o he_o have_v with_o the_o father_n as_o that_o whatsoever_o christ_n do_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o father_n power_n howbeit_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v refer_v this_o place_n to_o the_o divine_a substance_n of_o christ_n against_o the_o heretic_n 31._o then_o the_o jew_n take_v uppe_o stone_n again_o to_o stone_n he_o withal_o c._n as_o piety_n be_v zealous_a in_o defend_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v moderate_a so_o infidelity_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o madness_n and_o the_o devil_n do_v so_o provoke_v the_o wicked_a that_o they_o desire_v and_o seek_v nothing_o but_o murder_n bu_n the_o jew_n be_v move_v and_o stir_v up_o with_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n take_v up_o stone_n as_o we_o read_v that_o they_o do_v at_o a_o neither_o time_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o eight_o chapter_n go_v before_o this_o success_n show_v with_o what_o mind_n they_o question_v with_o christ_n for_o a_o manifest_a confession_n of_o the_o which_o they_o feign_v themselves_o to_o be_v very_o desirous_a make_v they_o by_o and_o by_o to_o fall_v into_o outrageous_a madness_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o when_o they_o be_v thus_o violent_o carry_v to_o oppress_v christ_n they_o pretend_v the_o colour_n and_o cloak_n of_o judgement_n 24.16_o deu._n i3_n 5_o levi_n 24.16_o as_o though_o they_o do_v the_o thing_n according_a to_o form_n of_o law_n where_o god_n command_v false_a prophet_n to_o be_v stoan_v to_o death_n 32._o jesus_n answer_v they_o many_o good_a work_n have_v i_o show_v you_o from_o my_o father_n for_o which_o of_o they_o do_v you_o stone_n i_o m._n to_o the_o end_n christ_n may_v reprehande_o their_o unspeakable_a malice_n and_o madness_n he_o do_v not_o only_o object_v his_o innocencye_n but_o also_o which_o be_v more_o his_o notable_a and_o wonderful_a beneficience_n show_v towards_o they_o c._n and_o he_o do_v not_o only_o deny_v they_o to_o have_v any_o cause_n why_o they_o shall_v so_o rage_v but_o do_v also_o accuse_v they_o of_o ingratitude_n for_o that_o they_o so_o unthankefullye_o requight_v the_o benefit_n of_o god_n neither_o do_v he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v well_o deserve_v at_o their_o hand_n for_o one_o or_o two_o work_n sake_n but_o say_v that_o he_o have_v be_v benefyciall_a unto_o they_o in_o many_o thing_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v m._n what_o cause_n have_v you_o against_o i_o whereby_o i_o may_v seem_v worthy_a unto_o you_o to_o be_v stoan_v to_o death_n bu_n malefactor_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v punish_v and_o stoan_v to_o death_n but_o as_o for_o i_o what_o evell_a have_v i_o do_v what_o have_v i_o deserve_v which_o have_v hurt_v no_o man_n but_o have_v show_v a_o innumerable_a sort_n of_o benefit_n to_o every_o one_o of_o you_o and_o the_o same_o from_o my_o father_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o my_o devyne_a power_n c._n for_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o god_n be_v the_o authoure_n of_o those_o work_n and_o this_o interrogation_n be_v of_o great_a weight_n to_o prick_v their_o conscience_n then_o if_o he_o have_v speak_v by_o a_o simple_a affirmative_a to_o show_v good_a work_n be_v a_o hebrew_n phrase_n in_o steed_n of_o to_o do_v good_a work_v the_o which_o phrase_n be_v often_o time_n use_v in_o the_o holy_a scriture_n as_o when_o it_o be_v say_v many_o say_v who_o will_v show_v we_o any_o good_a 20_o psal_n 4.7_o psal_n 60_o 5_o psal_n 71_o 20_o also_o thou_o haste_v show_v thy_o people_n hard_a thing_n again_o thou_o have_v show_v i_o great_a trouble_n for_o the_o lord_n have_v do_v many_o good_a work_n already_o by_o which_o he_o have_v bring_v health_n unto_o man_n and_o have_v thereby_o show_v what_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v look_v for_o at_o his_o hand_n namely_o nothing_o but_o assure_a salvation_n and_o everlasting_a life_n this_o he_o exhort_v the_o jew_n to_o believe_v and_o declare_v that_o all_o his_o work_n belong_v to_o the_o father_n that_o they_o may_v assure_o believe_v he_o and_o these_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o so_o stir_v they_o be_v nothing_o but_o good_a and_o wholesome_a work_n right_o therefore_o he_o déemaund_v of_o they_o for_o which_o of_o his_o good_a work_n they_o go_v about_o to_o stone_n he_o m._n it_o be_v extreme_a ingratitude_n and_o wickedness_n to_o render_v evell_a for_o so_o many_o benefit_n and_o to_o go_v about_o to_o kill_v the_o benefactoure_n i2_n psal_n 35_o i2_n of_o such_o unthankful_a person_n david_n complain_v say_v they_o render_v i_o evell_a for_o good_a therefore_o if_o so_o be_v in_o like_a manner_n evell_a shall_v be_v render_v to_o any_o man_n for_o good_a let_v he_o comfort_v himself_o with_o the_o lot_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n 33._o the_o jew_n answer_v he_o say_v for_o thy_o good_a work_n sake_n we_o stone_n thou_o not_o but_o for_o thy_o blasphemy_n and_o because_o that_o thou_o be_v a_o man_n make_v thyself_o god_n r._n the_o wisdom_n of_o this_o world_n will_v not_o seem_v unjust_o and_o wicked_o to_o persecute_v christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n wherefore_o they_o fain_a and_o imagine_v cause_n against_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o setter_n forth_o of_o the_o same_o which_o they_o think_v worthy_a of_o punishment_n the_o which_o it_o pretend_v to_o cloak_n the_o envy_n against_o christ_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n c._n wherefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o a_o good_a conscience_n be_v unto_o we_o as_o a_o brazen_a wall_n by_o which_o we_o may_v strong_o repel_v the_o reproach_n and_o sclaunder_n with_o the_o which_o we_o be_v misereport_v of_o for_o how_o soever_o they_o colour_n &_o cloak_n their_o malice_n &_o what_o ignominy_n soever_o they_o bring_v unto_o we_o for_o a_o time_n if_o we_o fight_v for_o god_n cause_v he_o will_v not_o deny_v himself_o but_o will_v defend_v and_o maintain_v his_o truth_n r._n christ_n be_v accuse_v of_o blasphemy_n against_o god_n and_o of_o sedition_n against_o sesar_n the_o prophet_n be_v accuse_v of_o defection_n from_o the_o law_n and_o of_o seduce_v the_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n be_v accuse_v partly_o of_o sedition_n and_o partly_o of_o blasphemy_n against_o god_n and_o so_o great_a wickedness_n be_v spread_v abroad_o of_o the_o godly_a before_o the_o reason_n and_o wisdom_n of_o the_o world_n that_o whosoever_o kill_v they_o he_o think_v that_o he_o do_v unto_o god_n good_a service_n as_o shall_v be_v say_v in_o the_o sixteen_o chapter_n follow_v m._n here_o the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n be_v constrain_v to_o acknowledge_v his_o good_a work_n for_o they_o say_v not_o thy_o work_n be_v evil_a but_o they_o acknoweledg_v that_o to_o be_v true_a which_o he_o say_v i_o have_v show_v unto_o you_o many_o good_a
they_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o common_a sort_n of_o people_n do_v forsake_v they_o and_o follow_v christ_n because_o they_o be_v to_o slow_a and_o favourable_a this_o manner_n of_o speech_n desperate_a man_n do_v use_v when_o they_o prepare_v themselves_o to_o do_v any_o evell_a wherefore_o if_o so_o be_v the_o enemy_n of_o god_n be_v so_o sharp_a set_v to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v evell_a how_o much_o more_o constant_a aught_o we_o to_o be_v in_o a_o good_a cause_n the_o phariseis_n by_o their_o own_o voice_n condemn_v themselves_o affirm_v that_o the_o more_o they_o seek_v to_o entrap_v snare_n betray_v and_o to_o excommunicate_a christ_n the_o more_o his_o glory_n encreace_v euenso_fw-la the_o wicked_a not_o know_v their_o own_o judgement_n be_v condemn_v m._n also_o we_o have_v hear_v to_o note_n what_o fruit_n and_o profit_n the_o adversary_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o truth_n make_v their_o account_n to_o have_v by_o their_o practice_n namely_o this_o that_o the_o world_n go_v not_o after_o christ_n and_o his_o truth_n christ_n be_v the_o light_n he_o which_o go_v after_o he_o disdain_v with_o his_o heart_n the_o darkness_n of_o man_n tradition_n and_o cast_v from_o he_o the_o yoke_n of_o human_a mastershippe_n therefore_o they_o bend_v their_o whoal_n mind_n to_o restrain_v the_o world_n from_o follow_v after_o christ_n when_o they_o can_v not_o bring_v this_o to_o pass_v and_o see_v the_o feruente_a desyer_n of_o the_o people_n they_o say_v behold_v all_o the_o whoale_n world_n go_v and_o thus_o do_v the_o bishope_n and_o phariseis_n of_o the_o antichristian_a kingdom_n behave_v themselves_o least_o the_o world_n know_v the_o truth_n shall_v follow_v christ_n but_o if_o it_o seem_v good_a unto_o the_o lord_n to_o set_v forth_o the_o light_n of_o his_o truth_n before_o this_o latter_a and_o corrupt_a world_n all_o the_o adversaries_n that_n be_v shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o and_o they_o shall_v not_o only_o prevail_v nothing_o but_o also_o see_v the_o zeal_n and_o desyer_n of_o the_o world_n towards_o the_o truth_n be_v constrain_v to_o say_v 30._o pro._n 2i_o 30._o you_o see_v that_o we_o profit_v nothing_o behold_v the_o world_n go_v after_o this_o doctrine_n a_o for_o there_o be_v no_o wisdom_n nor_o prudence_n nor_o counsel_n against_o the_o lord_n bu_n therefore_o let_v those_o miserable_a wretch_n be_v mad_a so_o long_o as_o they_o listen_v christ_n the_o lord_n do_v rain_n and_o shall_v reign_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o enemy_n 20._o there_o be_v sertaine_a greek_n among_o they_o that_o come_v to_o worship_n at_o the_o feast_n c._n many_o interpret_v this_o place_n of_o the_o barbarian_n but_o because_o it_o follow_v afterward_o that_o they_o come_v to_o worship_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o understand_v the_o same_o of_o the_o uncircumcised_a for_o this_o be_v severe_o forbid_v by_o the_o roman_a law_n and_o the_o officer_n and_o magistrate_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n give_v straight_o charge_v and_o commandment_n that_o no_o man_n leave_v the_o religion_n of_o his_o country_n shall_v follow_v judaisme_n and_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v disperse_v through_o asya_n and_o greece_n have_v liberty_n to_o go_v over_o the_o sea_n to_o offer_v sacryfyce_n in_o the_o temple_n furthermore_o the_o jew_n will_v never_o suffer_v the_o gentile_n to_o be_v mingle_v with_o they_o in_o the_o solemn_a worship_n of_o god_n because_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o think_v themselves_o their_o temple_n &_o their_o sacrifice_n to_o be_v pollute_v a._n for_o we_o know_v what_o happen_v in_o paul_n tyme._n for_o when_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v of_o asia_n see_v he_o in_o the_o temple_n they_o cause_v a_o tumulte_n and_o lay_v hand_n on_o he_o cry_v man_n of_o israel_n help_n this_o be_v the_o man_n that_o teach_v all_o man_n everye_o where_o against_o the_o people_n and_o the_o law_n and_o this_o place_n he_o have_v also_o bring_v greek_n into_o the_o temple_n 21.27_o act_n 21.27_o and_o have_v pollute_v this_o holy_a place_n for_o they_o have_v see_v before_o with_o he_o in_o the_o city_n trophinus_n a_o ephesian_a who_o they_o suppose_v that_o paul_n have_v bring_v into_o the_o temple_n these_o greek_n therefore_o of_o who_o the_o evangelist_n sainte_n john_n speak_v be_v jew_n notwithstanding_o because_o they_o dwell_v far_o of_o on_o the_o other_o side_n of_o the_o sea_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o the_o evangelist_n bring_v they_o in_o as_o sojourner_n and_o stranger_n not_o know_v any_o of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v than_o do_v in_o jerusalem_n and_o thereabouts_o the_o scence_n therefore_o and_o meaning_n of_o this_o place_n be_v that_o christ_n be_v receyve_v and_o acknowledge_v for_o a_o king_n not_o only_o of_o the_o indweller_n of_o jewrye_n which_o come_v out_o of_o the_o town_n and_o city_n at_o the_o feast_n day_n but_o also_o that_o his_o fame_n be_v spread_v a_o far_o of_o even_o to_o the_o man_n that_o dwell_v on_o the_o other_o side_n of_o the_o sea_n that_o come_v to_o worship_v c._n this_o also_o they_o may_v have_v do_v in_o their_o country_n but_o saint_n john_n speak_v here_o of_o solemn_a worship_n which_o be_v join_v with_o sacrifice_n for_o although_o religion_n and_o piety_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o the_o temple_n yet_o for_o all_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o offer_v sacrifice_n else_o where_o neither_o have_v they_o in_o any_o other_o place_n the_o ark_n of_o the_o testimony_n which_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o god_n presence_n every_o man_n daily_o spiritual_o worship_v god_n in_o his_o house_n yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o saint_n which_o be_v under_o the_o law_n be_v bind_v to_o worship_v eternallye_o according_a as_o they_o be_v command_v by_o moses_n to_o the_o which_o end_n the_o feast_n day_n be_v ordain_v wherefore_o if_o these_o man_n come_v so_o far_o with_o great_a cost_n with_o labour_n and_o pain_n and_o not_o without_o peril_n and_o danger_n that_o they_o may_v not_o neglect_v the_o external_a profession_n of_o their_o godliness_n what_o excuse_n can_v we_o have_v at_o this_o day_n except_o we_o can_v testify_v that_o we_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n at_o home_n at_o our_o house_n the_o worship_n of_o the_o law_n be_v at_o a_o end_n but_o the_o lord_n have_v appoint_v baptism_n his_o holy_a supper_n and_o the_o use_n of_o prayer_n which_o he_o have_v leave_v to_o the_o church_n for_o the_o faithful_a to_o exercise_v themselves_o therein_o therefore_o the_o neglect_v of_o these_o thing_n do_v declare_v that_o we_o be_v to_o can_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o godliness_n 21._o the_o same_o come_v therefore_o unto_o philip_n which_o be_v of_o bethsaida_n a_o city_n of_o galilee_n and_o desire_v he_o say_v sir_n we_o will_v fain_o see_v jesus_n m._n in_o these_o man_n we_o have_v a_o example_n both_o of_o modesty_n and_o also_o of_o providence_n of_o modesty_n in_o that_o they_o do_v not_o rush_v rashlye_a into_o the_o lord_n presence_n without_o his_o will_n but_o do_v seek_v to_o obtain_v that_o which_o they_o desire_v by_o his_o good_a will_n this_o declare_v that_o they_o think_v humble_o of_o themselves_o and_o honourablye_o of_o christ_n of_o prudence_n in_o that_o they_o come_v not_o to_o everye_o one_o but_o to_o such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v a_o disciple_n and_o familiar_a friend_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o matter_n they_o use_v not_o the_o help_n of_o any_o pharisey_n or_o high_a priest_n who_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o christ_n c._n this_o therefore_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o reverence_n that_o they_o do_v compel_v christ_n but_o do_v seek_v to_o have_v access_n unto_o he_o by_o philip._n for_o reverence_n always_o beget_v modesty_n m._n by_o this_o example_n we_o be_v teach_v who_o help_n to_o use_v if_o so_o be_v we_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n man_n can_v do_v nothing_o here_o be_v without_o the_o spirit_n and_o fellowship_n of_o christ_n whether_o they_o be_v doctor_n or_o master_n or_o high_a priest_n or_o pharisées_fw-fr but_o we_o must_v common_a with_o the_o true_a disciple_n by_o who_o ministry_n access_n unto_o the_o knowledge_n and_o sight_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v get_v c._n but_o whereas_o the_o papist_n gather_v upon_o this_o place_n that_o we_o must_v pray_v unto_o the_o dead_a that_o they_o may_v be_v patroness_n and_o advocate_n for_o we_o unto_o the_o christ_n and_o the_o father_n it_o be_v so_o ridiculous_a and_o vain_a that_o it_o need_v no_o refutation_n place_n prayer_n to_o the_o dead_a ground_v on_o this_o place_n the_o greek_n talk_v with_o philip_n face_n to_o face_n but_o he_o which_o call_v upon_o the_o dead_a from_o who_o he_o be_v far_o distant_a do_v he_o i_o pray_v you_o the_o like_a but_o these_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o human_a boldness_n after_o that_o the_o same_o have_v take_v liberty_n
have_v foresee_v &_o appoint_v but_o we_o must_v note_n that_o the_o simple_a and_o bare_a forknewledge_n of_o god_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o these_o thing_n howbeit_o here_o we_o must_v not_o have_v so_o much_o consideration_n of_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o god_n as_o of_o judgement_n and_o vengeance_n neither_o do_v god_n look_v down_o &_o consider_v from_o heaven_n what_o man_n will_v do_v but_o he_o pronounce_v what_o he_o himself_o will_v do_v name_o that_o he_o will_v strike_v the_o wicked_a with_o blindness_n &_o giddiness_n that_o he_o may_v take_v vengeance_n upon_o their_o wickedness_n for_o here_o the_o inferior_a cause_n be_v noated_a why_o god_n will_v have_v his_o word_n which_o by_o nature_n be_v whoalsome_n to_o be_v perilous_a and_o deadly_a to_o the_o jew_n name_o for_o that_o they_o have_v so_o deserve_v by_o their_o wickedness_n it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o shun_v this_o punishment_n when_o god_n have_v once_o determine_v to_o cast_v they_o into_o a_o reprobate_a scence_n and_o to_o turn_v the_o light_n of_o his_o word_n into_o darkness_n for_o this_o latter_a prophesy_n be_v unlyke_a to_o the_o first_o in_o this_o because_o there_o the_o prophet_n affirm_v that_o no_o other_o do_v believe_v than_o those_o who_o god_n do_v illuminate_v according_a to_o his_o good_a pleasure_n the_o cause_n whereof_o do_v not_o appear_v for_o see_v of_o right_a and_o equity_n all_o man_n be_v lose_v and_o damn_a god_n may_v according_o to_o his_o goodness_n save_o who_o he_o will_v from_o among_o the_o rest_n but_o here_o he_o make_v mention_v of_o the_o obduration_n by_o which_o god_n take_v vengeance_n upon_o the_o wickedness_n of_o a_o unthankful_a people_n who_o so_o do_v not_o observe_v and_o consider_v these_o degree_n do_v confound_v amiss_o dyvers_a place_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o we_o have_v expound_v this_o place_n of_o esaias_n in_o our_o exposition_n upon_o the_o thirtéene_a chapter_n of_o mathewe_n begin_v at_o the_o fowretéene_a verse_n 41._o such_o thing_n say_v esaias_n when_o he_o see_v his_o glory_n and_o speak_v of_o he_o m._n this_o the_o evangelist_n add_v least_o any_o man_n shall_v say_v to_o what_o purpose_n do_v thou_o allege_v this_o place_n the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o the_o man_n in_o his_o time_n and_o therefore_o they_o serve_v nothing_o to_o this_o purpose_n c._n this_o cogitation_n john_n prevent_v plain_o show_v that_o the_o prophet_n be_v send_v to_o be_v a_o teacher_n not_o for_o one_o age_n but_o rather_o that_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n be_v show_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o witness_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v under_o his_o reign_n and_o kingdom_n for_o to_o what_o end_n do_v the_o prophetical_a revelation_n serve_v but_o only_o to_o delyver_v as_o it_o be_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n to_o other_o that_o which_o they_o have_v receyve_v from_o god_n and_o the_o evangelist_n take_v this_o as_o grant_v unto_o he_o that_o esaias_n see_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n whereupon_o he_o gather_v that_o he_o apply_v his_o doctrine_n to_o the_o state_n of_o his_o kingdom_n which_o be_v to_o come_v a._n as_o touch_v the_o time_n in_o the_o which_o the_o prophet_n see_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n some_o refer_v it_o to_o that_o time_n in_o the_o which_o vzias_n the_o king_n die_v 6.1_o esay_n 6.1_o for_o then_o the_o prophet_n see_v the_o lord_n sit_v upon_o a_o high_a throne_n and_o the_o skyrte_n of_o his_o clothing_n fill_v the_o temple_n the_o seraphin_n stand_v upon_o it_o everye_o one_o have_v six_o wing_n with_o twain_o he_o cover_v his_o face_n and_o with_o twain_o he_o cover_v his_o foot_n and_o with_o twain_o he_o do_v flee_v and_o one_o cry_v to_o another_o and_o say_v holy_a holy_a holy_a be_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n the_o whoale_n world_n be_v full_a of_o his_o glory_n by_o this_o vision_n the_o purpose_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v to_o show_v a_o view_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n m._n but_o this_o also_o may_v be_v refer_v to_o that_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o three_o and_o fiftye_a chapter_n of_o esai_n for_o then_o the_o prophet_n see_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o spirit_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o arm_n of_o the_o lord_n 42._o nevertheless_o among_o the_o chief_a ruler_n also_o many_o beleve_v on_o he_o but_o because_o of_o the_o pharisee_n they_o do_v not_o confess_v he_o jest_n they_o shall_v be_v excomunicate_a b._n because_o the_o evangelist_n have_v speak_v of_o the_o obstinacy_n of_o the_o jew_n because_o they_o can_v not_o believe_v on_o the_o lord_n he_o do_v very_o well_o add_v this_o by_o which_o he_o do_v show_v that_o all_o be_v not_o so_o reject_v but_o that_o many_o of_o the_o ruler_n also_o beléeve_v one_o the_o lord_n how_o be_v it_o they_o be_v but_o weak_a as_o yet_o and_o lover_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o this_o world_n c._n a_o worthy_a example_n very_o of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n for_o impiety_n have_v once_o get_v the_o upper_a hand_n be_v a_o certain_a general_a plague_n which_o by_o the_o contagion_n thereof_o infect_v all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o body_n therefore_o it_o be_v the_o singular_a gift_n of_o god_n when_o some_o remain_v sincere_a among_o a_o corrupt_a people_n howbeit_o the_o same_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v see_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o world_n for_o although_o impiety_n and_o the_o contempt_n of_o god_n do_v abound_v and_o although_o a_o great_a number_n go_v about_o to_o banish_v away_o quite_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n notwithstanding_o it_o shall_v find_v some_o sanctuary_n and_o receiver_n and_o so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o faith_n have_v certain_a rest_a place_n least_o it_o shall_v be_v quite_o drive_v out_o of_o the_o world_n world_n faith_n can_v be_v bani●●●_n out_o of_o 〈◊〉_d world_n m._n so_o in_o the_o time_n of_o elias_n there_o seem_v to_o be_v almost_o none_o which_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n so_o that_o elias_n be_v think_v to_o remain_v alone_a when_o as_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v seven_o thousand_o man_n in_o israel_n which_o have_v not_o bow_v their_o knee_n before_o baal_n 19_o 1._o king_n 19_o c._n this_o word_n also_o betoken_v a_o emphasys_n and_o vehemency_n for_o prince_n and_o ruler_n for_o the_o most_o part_n wear_v such_o deadly_a enemy_n and_o hater_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o it_o be_v incredible_a that_o some_o one_o among_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v find_v faithful_a the_o more_o wonderful_a therefore_o be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o pierce_v in_o thither_o whether_o nothing_o else_o can_v come_v howbeit_o this_o be_v not_o the_o wickedness_n of_o one_o age_n only_o that_o the_o rulars_n be_v obstinate_a and_o rebellious_a against_o christ_n for_o honour_n riches_n and_o dignity_n have_v always_o pride_n their_o handmaid_n wherefore_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a matter_n to_o bring_v they_o to_o be_v humble_a and_o lowlye_o in_o their_o own_o eye_n who_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o pride_n and_o arrogancye_n scarcelye_a know_v themselves_o to_o be_v man_n whatsoever_o he_o be_v that_o excel_v other_o in_o this_o world_n will_v not_o if_o he_o be_v wise_a trust_v unto_o his_o mightiness_n lest_o the_o same_o be_v a_o let_v unto_o he_o a._n 1.10_o jam._n 1.10_o let_v he_o that_o be_v rich_a say_v saint_n james_n rejoice_v that_o he_o be_v bring_v low_o for_o he_o shall_v pass_v away_o as_o a_o flower_n of_o the_o field_n when_o he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v many_o we_o must_v not_o so_o understand_v the_o same_o as_o though_o the_o one_o half_a or_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o ruler_n beléeve_v for_o they_o be_v compare_v to_o other_o of_o who_o there_o be_v a_o great_a multitude_n they_o be_v but_o a_o few_o but_o those_o same_o be_v a_o great_a many_o if_o they_o be_v consider_v in_o themselves_o but_o because_o of_o the_o phariseis_n this_o the_o evangelist_n mislike_v in_o they_o for_o that_o they_o do_v not_o bold_o confess_v their_o faith_n c._n and_o therewithal_o noat_v how_o great_a the_o imbecility_n of_o faith_n be_v in_o they_o who_o be_v luke_o warm_a or_o rather_o key_n can_v for_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n can_v be_v divide_v from_o confession_n 10.10_o faith_n and_o confession_n link_v together_o rom._n 10.10_o for_o with_o the_o heart_n we_o beeléeve_v to_o righteousenesse_n and_o with_o the_o mouth_n we_o confess_v to_o salvation_n and_o it_o can_v be_v that_o faith_n be_v once_o kindle_v in_o the_o hart_n shall_v not_o burn_v &_o cast_v forth_o his_o flame_n therefore_o the_o evangelist_n geve_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o these_o prince_n embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n because_o they_o know_v the_o same_o to_o be_v come_v from_o god_n but_o yet_o that_o
therefore_o although_o he_o seem_v to_o speak_v unto_o deaf_a man_n for_o a_o time_n yet_o notwithstanding_o afterward_o it_o appear_v that_o he_o do_v not_o spend_v his_o wind_n in_o vain_a but_o that_o he_o sow_v the_o seed_n in_o the_o ground_n which_o be_v afterward_o to_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n and_o as_o christ_n speak_v here_o of_o his_o word_n and_o of_o the_o fulfillinge_v of_o thing_n even_o so_o his_o death_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n do_v grow_v together_o with_o doctrine_n that_o they_o may_v bring_v forth_o faith_n in_o us._n a._n moreover_o he_o speak_v here_o almost_o the_o same_o which_o he_o do_v when_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o treason_n of_o judas_n now_o i_o tell_v you_o before_o it_o be_v come_v that_o when_o it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v you_o may_v believe_v that_o i_o be_o he_o 13.16_o john_n 13.16_o and_o in_o the_o sixteen_o chapter_n follow_v but_o these_o thing_n have_v i_o speak_v unto_o you_o that_o when_o the_o time_n shall_v come_v you_o may_v remember_v that_o i_o tell_v you_o by_o which_o word_n he_o show_v a_o plain_a argument_n of_o his_o divinitye_n to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o his_o disciple_n faith_n 38_o hereafter_o will_v i_o not_o taulke_v many_o word_n with_o you_o for_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n come_v &_o have_v naught_o in_o i_o bu_n now_o in_o plain_a word_n he_o show_v that_o be_v will_v die_v for_o the_o salvation_n and_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n for_o he_o show_v that_o death_n and_o bond_n wait_v for_o he_o say_v now_o shall_v my_o first_o ministry_n cease_v by_o which_o i_o abase_v myself_o even_o to_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n for_o the_o hour_n of_o my_o passion_n be_v at_o hand_n by_o which_o sai_v he_o mind_v to_o make_v his_o disciple_n more_o attentive_a and_o more_o deep_o to_o print_v his_o doctrine_n in_o their_o mind_n for_o fullness_n often_o time_n bring_v loathsomenesse_n and_o that_o be_v more_o earnest_o desire_v which_o be_v hard_a to_o be_v get_v and_o that_o which_o tarry_v but_o a_o while_o be_v most_o set_v by_o therefore_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o he_o will_v short_o go_v from_o they_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v the_o more_o desierouse_a to_o hear_v his_o doctrine_n and_o although_o christ_n shall_v teach_v we_o all_o our_o life_n time_n without_o cease_v yet_o notwithstanding_o this_o sentence_n may_v be_v apply_v to_o our_o use_n also_o because_o see_v the_o race_n of_o our_o life_n be_v but_o short_a we_o must_v use_v occasion_n a._n lest_o we_o be_v blind_v in_o our_o own_o wickedness_n do_v contemn_v his_o voice_n which_o talk_v with_o we_o at_o this_o day_n for_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n c._n he_o may_v simple_o have_v say_v that_o he_o shall_v die_v and_o that_o now_o the_o hour_n of_o his_o death_n be_v at_o hand_n but_o he_o speak_v by_o circomstance_n to_o confirm_v their_o mind_n least_o they_o be_v terrify_v with_o so_o horrible_a and_o fearful_a a_o kind_n of_o death_n shall_v fall_v away_o for_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o be_v crucefy_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o seek_v life_n among_o the_o dead_a first_o of_o all_o he_o say_v that_o this_o power_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o sathan_n then_o he_o add_v that_o he_o suffer_v the_o same_o not_o be_v cause_n he_o be_v thereunto_o constrain_v but_o that_o he_o may_v obey_v his_o father_n a._n but_o why_o the_o devil_n be_v call_v the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n we_o have_v show_v in_o the_o twelu_v chapter_n go_v before_o c._n and_o by_o the_o name_n of_o world_n be_v comprehend_v all_o mankind_n for_o there_o be_v but_o one_o redeemer_n which_o deliver_v we_o out_o of_o this_o horrible_a servitude_n but_o see_v this_o poonishment_n come_v by_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o first_o man_n even_o as_o daily_o it_o encreass_v more_o and_o more_o through_o new_a sin_n let_v we_o learn_v both_o to_o hate_v ourselves_o and_o our_o sin_n also_o for_o we_o be_v so_o captive_a under_o the_o rule_n of_o satan_n that_o notwithstanding_o this_o servitude_n which_o be_v voluntary_a shall_v not_o excuse_v we_o and_o make_v we_o blameless_a we_o must_v also_o note_n that_fw-mi the_o same_o be_v attribute_v here_o to_o the_o devil_n which_o be_v do_v by_o wicked_a man_n for_o it_o be_v no_o unwonted_a thing_n to_o attribute_v that_o to_o the_o capitaine_fw-fr which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o whole_a army_n of_o the_o capitaine_n satan_n be_v the_o captain_n of_o judas_n and_o of_o the_o murder_a jew_n who_o cause_v they_o to_o commit_v such_o horrible_a wickedness_n c._n therefore_o when_o the_o wicked_a be_v carry_v by_o the_o motion_n of_o satan_n whatsoever_o they_o do_v be_v just_o say_v to_o be_v his_o work_n m._n also_o this_o place_n teach_v what_o they_o ought_v to_o look_v for_o of_o this_o world_n in_o the_o which_o the_o devil_n be_v prince_n seconde_o how_o he_o use_v wicked_a man_n as_o his_o soldier_n to_o persecute_v god_n elect_v and_o have_v naught_o in_o i_o b._n satan_n have_v power_n over_o those_o that_o be_v subject_a to_o sin_n for_o he_o work_v in_o the_o child_n of_o disobedience_n therefore_o see_v the_o lord_n be_v pure_a from_o all_o sin_n satan_n have_v no_o power_n at_o all_o in_o he_o c._n howbeit_o these_o word_n may_v have_v a_o far_a meaning_n for_o christ_n speak_v not_o here_o of_o his_o pureness_n alone_o but_o also_o of_o his_o divine_a power_n which_o be_v not_o subject_n unto_o death_n for_o it_o be_v mete_v for_o the_o disciple_n to_o know_v that_o he_o be_v not_o obnoxius_fw-la to_o infirmytye_n least_o they_o shall_v think_v to_o base_o of_o his_o power_n but_o in_o this_o general_a sentence_n that_o former_a sentence_n be_v conclude_v that_o in_o subdue_a death_n he_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o satan_n wheruppon_o be_v gather_v that_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o our_o turn_n when_o he_o submit_v himself_o to_o death_n bu_n r._n othersome_a also_o note_n here_o that_o satan_n have_v no_o power_n in_o christ_n because_o the_o member_n and_o instrument_n of_o satan_n can_v not_o obtain_v that_o which_o they_o desire_v for_o they_o purpose_v to_o destroy_v christ_n and_o to_o blot_v out_o his_o name_n for_o ever_o but_o he_o when_o he_o hang_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o be_v even_o in_o death_n shake_v the_o earth_n and_o wrought_v such_o wonder_n as_o beséeme_v the_o son_n of_o god_n straight_o after_o he_o arise_v from_o death_n to_o life_n and_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n where_o he_o reign_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n christ_n satan_n have_v no_o power_n in_o christ_n therefore_o the_o power_n of_o sathan_n can_v prevail_v nothing_o against_o the_o lord_n of_o light_n and_o life_n this_o be_v no_o small_a consolation_n to_o the_o faithful_a for_o the_o lord_n jesus_n have_v over_o come_v for_o we_o sin_n death_n and_o sathan_n wherefore_o if_o sathan_n have_v no_o power_n in_o the_o head_n neither_o shall_v he_o have_v any_o power_n in_o the_o member_n for_o the_o victory_n life_n and_o innocencye_n of_o christ_n jesus_n be_v we_o by_o faith_n therefore_o if_o at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n come_v unto_o thou_o be_v not_o afraid_a consider_v that_o he_o have_v bend_v and_o use_v all_o his_o force_n against_o the_o saviour_n and_o prevail_v not_o but_o be_v overthrow_v himself_o when_o he_o think_v to_o have_v get_v the_o victory_n the_o lord_n jesus_n get_v the_o victory_n for_o thy_o sake_n and_o thou_o shall_v overcome_v in_o he_o r._n but_o if_o satan_n have_v no_o power_n over_o christ_n why_o then_o do_v he_o prevail_v so_o much_o that_o he_o bring_v he_o to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n for_o short_o after_o christ_n die_v and_o that_o the_o most_o shameful_a death_n of_o all_o other_o even_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n hear_v now_o the_o cause_n hereof_o in_o these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n follow_v 31._o but_o that_o the_o world_n may_v know_v that_o i_o love_v the_o father_n and_o as_o the_o father_n give_v i_o a_o commandment_n even_o so_o do_v i_o ▪_o rise_v let_v we_o go_v hence_o but_o that_o the_o world_n may_v know_v b._n that_o be_v to_o say_v therefore_o i_o will_v geve_v place_n to_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n and_o delyver_v myself_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o sinner_n that_o the_o world_n may_v know_v that_o i_o love_v the_o father_n c._n we_o have_v in_o this_o to_o note_n that_o god_n decree_v here_o stand_v in_o the_o high_a place_n lest_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o christ_n be_v so_o carry_v to_o death_n by_o the_o violence_n of_o satan_n that_o some_o thing_n happen_v to_o he_o beside_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n for_o it_o be_v god_n which_o have_v ordain_v his_o son_n to_o be_v the_o prepitiatory_a and_o which_o will_v
of_o god_n hereunto_o they_o be_v drive_v by_o satan_n their_o prince_n that_o old_a enemy_n of_o god_n whereupon_o if_o so_o be_v the_o apostle_n have_v not_o be_v choose_v out_o of_o the_o world_n and_o endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v a_o enemy_n to_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n although_o they_o have_v not_o be_v belove_v of_o the_o man_n of_o this_o world_n yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o have_v be_v bear_v withal_o and_o love_v of_o some_o but_o they_o seek_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n stir_v up_o the_o whoale_n world_n against_o they_o that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o those_o which_o be_v not_o endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n c._n this_o therefore_o be_v another_o consolation_n that_o the_o apostle_n be_v therefore_o hate_v of_o the_o world_n because_o they_o be_v select_v and_o choose_v out_o of_o the_o same_o and_o this_o be_v their_o true_a felicity_n and_o glory_n because_o after_o this_o manner_n they_o have_v escape_v out_o of_o destruction_n for_o this_o world_n be_v even_o vow_v to_o destruction_n 32_o i_o cor._n xi_o 32_o hereupon_o the_o apostle_n say_v when_o we_o be_v judge_v we_o be_v correct_v of_o the_o lord_n lest_o we_o shall_v be_v condemn_v with_o the_o world_n now_o if_o they_o be_v elect_v out_o of_o this_o world_n it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v part_n of_o this_o world_n and_o that_o they_o be_v separate_v by_o the_o only_a mercy_n of_o god_n from_o the_o rest_n 4_o gala._n i._n 4_o a._n even_o as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n show_v in_o these_o word_n which_o give_v himself_o for_o our_o sin_n to_o delyver_v we_o from_o this_o present_a evyll_n world_n according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o our_o father_n m._n here_o we_o see_v the_o cause_n for_o the_o which_o false_a and_o counterfeit_n doctrine_n be_v more_o easy_o receyve_v of_o man_n than_o that_o which_o be_v true_a for_o the_o world_n love_v his_o own_o but_o every_o one_o be_v a_o liar_n xi_o psa_n 116_o xi_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n therefore_o if_o the_o world_n favour_v the_o teacher_n of_o lie_n and_o error_n 5_z i._o john_n 4_o 5_z and_o be_v envious_a to_o the_o rest_n a._n whereupon_o saint_n john_n say_v they_o be_v of_o the_o world_n therefore_o the_o world_n hear_v they_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v but_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v continual_a war_n with_o man_n which_o will_v show_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o faithful_a minister_n of_o christ_n c._n yet_o notwithstanding_o that_o exhortation_n of_o saint_n paul_n be_v not_o repugnaunt_a with_o this_o doctrine_n i8_n romae_fw-la two_o i8_n when_o he_o say_v so_o much_o as_o in_o you_o lie_v have_v peace_n with_o all_o man_n for_o the_o exception_n which_o be_v add_v be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o we_o must_v look_v what_o be_v lawful_a and_o meet_a for_o we_o to_o do_v lest_o we_o seek_v to_o please_v the_o world_n suffer_v corruption_n &_o abuse_n of_o the_o same_o for_o the_o same_o apostle_n say_v in_o another_o place_n do_v i_o seek_v to_o please_v man_n for_o if_o i_o have_v hitherto_o please_v man_n x_o gala._n i._n x_o i_o have_v not_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n but_o there_o may_v yet_o another_o question_n be_v move_v for_o we_o see_v that_o the_o wicked_a which_o be_v of_o this_o world_n be_v not_o common_o hate_v but_o also_o detest_v and_o abhor_v of_o the_o great_a part_n here_o the_o world_n love_v not_o his_o own_o i_o answer_v earthly_a man_n which_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o scence_n and_o motion_n of_o the_o flesh_n do_v never_o true_o hate_v sin_n but_o only_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o have_v a_o care_n for_o their_o own_o commodity_n and_o loss_n howbeit_o the_o purpose_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o deny_v but_o that_o there_o be_v mortal_a war_n &_o contention_n among_o those_o of_o the_o world_n only_o he_o mind_v so_o show_v that_o the_o world_n hate_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o belong_v to_o god_n in_o the_o faithful_a and_o hereby_o also_o it_o do_v appear_v how_o fond_o the_o annabaptiste_n do_v err_v who_o gather_v by_o this_o argument_n alone_a that_o they_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n because_o they_o displease_v the_o great_a sort_n of_o man_n 20._o remember_v the_o word_n that_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o the_o servant_n be_v not_o great_a than_o the_o lord_n if_o they_o have_v persecute_v i_o they_o will_v also_o persecute_v you_o if_o they_o have_v keep_v my_o say_n they_o will_v keep_v you_o also_o remember_v the_o word_n that_o i_o say_v m._n concern_v this_o word_n of_o christ_n read_v the_o sixtéene_a verse_n of_o the_o thirtéene_a chapter_n go_v before_o c._n this_o be_v a_o confirmation_n of_o the_o sentence_n go_v before_o where_o christ_n say_v that_o he_o be_v hate_v of_o the_o world_n who_o notwithstanding_o be_v more_o excellent_a than_o his_o disciple_n for_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v that_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o servant_n shall_v be_v better_a than_o his_o master_n m._n by_o this_o place_n we_o be_v teach_v how_o much_o it_o become_v we_o not_o only_o to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o also_o to_o remember_v the_o same_o for_o as_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o have_v money_n for_o the_o present_a time_n except_o thou_o keep_v the_o same_o also_o for_o necessary_a use_n so_o also_o we_o must_v think_v of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o keep_v the_o same_o in_o mind_n be_v as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v get_v money_n and_o by_o and_o by_o waist_n and_o spend_v the_o same_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n must_v be_v keep_v for_o necessity_n to_o come_v also_o we_o see_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o servant_n of_o christ_n although_o he_o make_v account_n of_o they_o not_o as_o of_o servant_n but_o as_o of_o friend_n if_o they_o have_v persecute_v i_o bu_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v if_o they_o have_v not_o spare_v i_o which_o be_o your_o lord_n and_o prince_n excellent_a and_o mighty_a boath_n in_o word_n and_o also_o in_o power_n but_o have_v great_o persecute_v i_o it_o be_v not_o like_a that_o they_o will_v spare_v you_o which_o be_v far_o inferior_a unto_o i_o if_o they_o have_v keep_v my_o say_n c._n when_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o person_n he_o make_v mention_v also_o of_o doctrine_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o trouble_v the_o godly_a more_o than_o when_o they_o see_v the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n to_o be_v prowdlye_o contemn_v of_o man_n m._n he_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o very_a proud_a disciple_n which_o persuade_v himself_o that_o he_o can_v so_o delyver_v the_o doctrine_n of_o truth_n unto_o the_o world_n that_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o teach_v shall_v be_v receive_v and_o keep_v when_o christ_n himself_o miss_v of_o the_o same_o if_o any_o man_n demand_v say_v to_o what_o end_n then_o preach_v he_o and_o why_o do_v he_o command_v his_o disciple_n to_o preach_v this_o word_n so_o hate_v and_o despise_v of_o the_o world_n we_o answer_v first_o there_o be_v many_o of_o the_o elect_v which_o have_v receyve_v the_o same_o word_n of_o truth_n for_o who_o sake_n it_o be_v meet_v that_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v public_o teach_v secondlye_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o truth_n shall_v be_v set_v before_o the_o reprobate_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v have_v no_o excuse_n of_o their_o unbeléefe_n even_o as_o it_o shall_v be_v show_v in_o the_o two_o and_o twenty_o and_o four_o and_o twenty_o verse_n follow_v when_o christ_n say_v your_o doctrine_n and_o i_o it_o be_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o ministry_n there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a teacher_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v christ_n but_o he_o will_v have_v his_o doctrine_n of_o the_o which_o he_o be_v the_o first_o minister_n to_o be_v preach_v by_o his_o apostle_n a._n whereupon_o in_o the_o seventéene_a chapter_n follow_v he_o call_v his_o word_n they_o when_o he_o say_v nevertheless_o i_o pray_v not_o for_o they_o alone_a i5_n i_o pet._n 4._o i5_n but_o for_o they_o also_o which_o shall_v believe_v on_o i_o through_o their_o word_n 21._o but_o all_o these_o thing_n will_v they_o do_v unto_o you_o for_o my_o name_n sake_n because_o they_o have_v not_o know_v he_o that_o send_v i_o m._n he_o now_o show_v the_o principal_a cause_n of_o the_o hatred_n and_o persecution_n of_o his_o disciple_n by_o the_o world_n name_o the_o mousterous_a madness_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n be_v so_o outrageous_a against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n through_o ignorance_n for_o no_o man_n can_v wyttinglye_o presume_v to_o withstand_v god._n therefore_o it_o be_v ignorance_n and_o blindness_n which_o make_v the_o world_n so_o bold_o as_o to_o resist_v christ_n we_o must_v
what_o thing_n worthy_a of_o hatred_n do_v the_o most_o meek_a and_o love_a lord_n jesus_n commit_v he_o deliver_v from_o destruction_n he_o deliver_v from_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o devil_n he_o extinguish_v the_o strength_n of_o sin_n he_o bring_v mank_v out_o of_o servitude_n and_o bondage_n into_o the_o gloriouse_a liberty_n of_o god_n childeren_n he_o have_v give_v unto_o man_n the_o participation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n to_o be_v our_o dwell_v place_n wherefore_o he_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v commend_v of_o all_o man_n than_o to_o be_v hate_v but_o none_o of_o these_o thing_n can_v move_v they_o for_o they_o hate_v he_o without_o any_o cause_n who_o they_o shall_v most_o entire_o have_v love_v b._n that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o psalm_n he_o say_v be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n because_o by_o the_o name_n of_o law_n he_o understand_v the_o whoale_n scripture_n c._n also_o the_o whoale_n doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o appendix_n of_o the_o law_n and_o we_o know_v that_o the_o ministry_n of_o moses_n continue_v but_o till_o christ_n time_n of_o the_o which_o we_o have_v speak_v in_o the_o seventéene_a verse_n of_o the_o eight_o chapter_n go_v before_o also_o he_o call_v it_o their_o law_n not_o for_o honour_n sake_n but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v more_o sharp_o nip_v with_o a_o familiar_a title_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v they_o have_v a_o law_n give_v unto_o they_o as_o it_o be_v by_o birthright_n in_o the_o which_o they_o see_v their_o manner_n lively_o draw_v forth_o unto_o they_o m._n where_o we_o have_v to_o note_n how_o the_o wicked_a by_o their_o wickedness_n fulfil_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v foreshow_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o jew_n know_v this_o place_n of_o scripture_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v so_o blind_v that_o they_o do_v not_o perceive_v that_o they_o fulfil_v the_o same_o by_o hate_v christ_n yea_o and_o if_o any_o have_v tell_v they_o of_o the_o same_o they_o will_v in_o no_o wise_n have_v acknoweledged_a it_o 26._o but_o when_o the_o comforter_n be_v come_v who_o i_o will_v send_v unto_o you_o from_o the_o father_n even_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n which_o proceed_v of_o the_o father_n he_o shall_v testefie_v of_o i_o bu_n this_o also_o pertain_v to_o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o persecution_n which_o they_o suffer_v for_o the_o confession_n and_o preach_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n c._n for_o after_o christ_n have_v show_v that_o the_o apostle_n ought_v not_o to_o esteem_v any_o whit_n the_o less_o of_o the_o gospel_n because_o the_o same_o have_v many_o adversaries_n even_o in_o the_o church_n itself_o now_o he_o set_v against_o their_o wicked_a madness_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v the_o world_n shall_v rage_v against_o you_o to_o some_o your_o doctrine_n shall_v be_v a_o iestinge_v stock_n and_o othersome_a shall_v dete_v and_o abhor_v the_o same_o but_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o such_o violent_a motion_n which_o shall_v shake_v the_o strength_n of_o your_o faith_n when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v give_v unto_o you_o which_o shall_v establish_v you_o by_o his_o testimony_n bu_n for_o i_o know_v how_o hard_o a_o charge_n it_o seem_v unto_o you_o to_o be_v which_o i_o now_o commit_v unto_o you_o you_o yourselves_o feel_v how_o unapte_v and_o unprepared_a you_o be_v to_o take_v a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a weight_n upon_o you_o you_o fear_v i_o know_v this_o world_n arm_v with_o wisdom_n policy_n and_o with_o all_o manner_n of_o help_n and_o strength_n but_o i_o will_v not_o have_v you_o careful_a the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v be_v give_v unto_o you_o which_o shall_v geve_v testimony_n of_o i_o in_o this_o world_n and_o that_o with_o so_o great_a power_n that_o though_o this_o world_n rage_n never_o so_o mighty_o yet_o it_o shall_v prevail_v nothing_o and_o this_o very_o be_v our_o only_o comfort_n and_o stay_v when_o the_o world_n be_v on_o a_o roar_n on_o every_o side_n that_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v seal_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o our_o heart_n it_o regard_v nothing_o that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n for_o if_o so_o be_v it_o be_v subject_a unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n our_o faith_n shall_v daily_o be_v overthrow_v a_o houndered_a time_n therefore_o we_o must_v diligent_o note_n how_o we_o must_v stay_v ourselves_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o so_o great_a trouble_n name_o thus_o because_o we_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o this_o world_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n we_o know_v what_o thing_n god_n geve_v unto_o us._n this_o only_a witness_n do_v mighty_o repel_v disperse_v and_o overthrow_v whatsoever_o the_o world_n extoll_v to_o obscure_v and_o beat_v down_o the_o power_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n whosoever_o shall_v be_v endue_v with_o this_o spirit_n they_o have_v so_o little_a cause_n to_o be_v discourage_v by_o the_o hatred_n and_o contempt_n of_o this_o world_n that_o every_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v conqueror_n and_o overcommer_n of_o the_o same_o a._n for_o this_o be_v the_o victory_n which_o overcom_v the_o world_n 5.4_o 1._o joh._n 5.4_o even_o our_o faith_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o must_v beware_v that_o we_o do_v not_o depend_v upon_o man_n for_o so_o soon_o as_o faith_n begin_v so_o to_o wander_v yea_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o same_o begin_v to_o go_v forth_o of_o the_o sanctuary_n of_o god_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v miserable_o toss_v therefore_o it_o must_v be_v revoke_v and_o bring_v to_o the_o inward_a and_o secret_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o the_o faithful_a know_fw-mi to_o be_v give_v they_o from_o heaven_n and_o the_o spirit_n be_v say_v to_o testify_v of_o christ_n because_o it_o retain_v and_o keep_v the_o same_o faith_n in_o he_o aloan_v that_o we_o may_v not_o seek_v any_o part_n of_o our_o salvation_n in_o any_o other_o moreover_o he_o call_v the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o comforter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v our_o instructor_n our_o advocate_n and_o patron_n that_o we_o bear_v ourselves_o bold_a upon_o his_o defence_n shall_v never_o fear_v for_o christ_n go_v about_o by_o this_o title_n to_o confirm_v and_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n lest_o it_o shall_v quail_v in_o temptation_n who_o i_o will_v send_v unto_o you_o c._n he_o say_v that_o he_o will_v send_v his_o spirit_n from_o his_o father_n and_o that_o the_o same_o shall_v proceed_v from_o the_o father_n to_o make_v the_o same_o of_o more_o authority_n for_o the_o tstimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n can_v not_o suffice_v against_o so_o many_o strong_a assault_n except_o we_o be_v persuade_v that_o the_o same_o proceed_v from_o god_n therefore_o it_o be_v christ_n which_o send_v his_o spirit_n but_o out_o from_o the_o heavenly_a glory_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v know_v that_o the_o same_o be_v not_o a_o human_a gift_n but_o the_o assure_a pledge_n of_o god_n grace_n but_o whereas_o in_o this_o place_n it_o be_v call_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v to_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o present_a circumstance_n for_o we_o must_v under_o stand_v a_o antithesys_n or_o comparison_n for_o because_o without_o this_o witness_n man_n be_v diverse_o carry_v this_o way_n and_o that_o way_n and_o know_v not_o where_o safe_o to_o rest_v but_o wheresoever_o he_o speak_v there_o he_o deliver_v man_n mind_n from_o all_o doubt_n and_o fear_n of_o erroure_n a._n whereupon_o the_o apostle_n say_v it_o be_v god_n which_o stablish_v we_o with_o you_o in_o christ_n and_o have_v anoint_a we_o which_o have_v also_o seal_v we_o 2i_o 2._o cor._n i._n 2i_o and_o have_v give_v the_o earnest_n of_o the_o spirit_n into_o our_o heart_n b._n this_o spirit_n work_v all_o righteousness_n and_o truth_n in_o the_o saint_n it_o gloryfy_v christ_n make_v they_o bold_a to_o confess_v he_o to_o be_v the_o only_a savioure_n it_o teach_v all_o thing_n and_o make_v all_o those_o thing_n which_o christ_n have_v speak_v to_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v short_a it_o lead_v into_o all_o truth_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v proper_o call_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n 27._o and_o you_o shall_v bear_v wittenesse_n also_o because_o you_o have_v be_v with_o i_o from_o the_o beginning_n c._n the_o meaning_n of_o christ_n in_o these_o word_n be_v not_o that_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v such_o that_o the_o apostle_n shall_v have_v the_o same_o private_o and_o alone_a but_o that_o he_o will_v by_o they_o spread_v the_o same_o far_o because_o they_o shall_v be_v the_o instrument_n of_o the_o spirit_n evenas_a he_o have_v speak_v by_o their_o mouth_n as_o if_o chryste_n shall_v have_v say_v bu_n when_o i_o say_v that_o the_o spirit_n shall_v bear_v witness_n of_o i_o i_o
out_o by_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o jew_n out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n c._n this_o be_v no_o light_a offence_n to_o trouble_v their_o mind_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v drive_v out_o of_o the_o company_n of_o the_o godly_a as_o wicked_a and_o naughtye_a man_n and_o that_o of_o those_o which_o host_n themselves_o to_o be_v the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o glory_v in_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o in_o that_o he_o say_v they_o shall_v be_v excommunicate_v his_o meaning_n be_v this_o they_o shall_v cast_v you_o out_o of_o their_o synagogue_n they_o shall_v condemn_v you_o of_o impiety_n and_o heresy_n they_o will_v restrain_v you_o of_o water_n &_o fire_n and_o such_o necessarye_n they_o will_v banish_v you_o and_o sell_v your_o good_n and_o they_o will_v account_v you_o not_o for_o israelite_n but_o for_o gentile_n and_o athiestes_n c._n for_o the_o godly_a be_v subject_a not_o only_o to_o persecution_n but_o also_o to_o ignominy_n and_o reproach_n even_o as_o say_v the_o apostle_n paul_n i_o think_v that_o god_n have_v set_v forth_o we_o which_o be_v the_o last_o apostle_n 4.9_o i_o cor._n 4.9_o as_o it_o be_v man_n appoint_v unto_o death_n for_o we_o be_v make_v a_o gaze_a stock_n unto_o the_o world_n and_o to_o the_o angel_n and_o to_o man_n christ_n notwithstanding_o command_v to_o stand_v firm_a and_o steadfast_a against_o this_o temptation_n because_o though_o they_o be_v thrust_v out_o of_o synagogue_n yet_o nevertheless_o they_o shall_v abide_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n the_o sum_n be_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v discourage_v by_o the_o perverse_a judgement_n of_o man_n but_o rather_o strong_o to_o bear_v the_o opprobrie_n and_o shame_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n be_v content_v with_o this_o one_o thing_n that_o our_o cause_n which_o man_n scornful_o condemn_v be_v allow_v of_o god_n also_o hereby_o we_o gather_v that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o only_o evell_a entreat_v of_o the_o swear_a enemy_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o also_o sometime_o sclander_v and_o evell_a speak_v of_o by_o those_o which_o seem_v to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o houshoulde_n of_o christ_n and_o pyller_n of_o the_o church_n the_o scribe_n &_o high_a priest_n by_o who_o the_o apostle_n be_v condemn_v boast_a that_o they_o be_v appoint_v of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o deed_n the_o ordinary_a government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v in_o their_o hand_n &_o the_o office_n of_o judge_v come_v from_o god_n &_o not_o from_o man_n but_o by_o their_o tyranny_n they_o have_v corrupt_v the_o whoale_n order_v institute_v of_o god_n thus_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o power_n which_o be_v grant_v unto_o they_o to_o edifycation_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o sivyll_a oppression_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n excommunication_n which_o shall_v have_v be_v a_o medicine_n to_o pourge_v the_o church_n be_v convert_v to_o banish_v all_o impiety_n out_o of_o the_o same_o the_o which_o see_v the_o apostle_n perceive_v in_o their_o age_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v be_v afraid_a at_o this_o day_n of_o the_o pope_n curse_n with_o the_o which_o he_o thretn_v we_o because_o of_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o they_o can_v do_v we_o no_o more_o harm_n than_o these_o old_a excommunication_n do_v unto_o the_o apostle_n nay_o we_o ought_v to_o desy_a nothing_o more_o than_o to_o be_v out_o of_o that_o company_n from_o whence_o christ_n be_v banish_v but_o concern_v excommunication_n and_o the_o abuse_n of_o the_o same_o read_v the_o nine_o chapter_n go_v before_o but_o the_o time_n shall_v come_v m._n christ_n show_v what_o great_a hatred_n of_o the_o world_n the_o apostle_n be_v like_a to_o sustain_v it_o may_v seem_v a_o light_a matter_n to_o be_v expel_v and_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o company_n of_o some_o man_n for_o what_o hurt_n be_v it_o to_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v expel_v out_o of_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n as_o though_o they_o shall_v not_o short_o after_o have_v go_v out_o of_o the_o same_o though_o they_o have_v not_o be_v expel_v r._n therefore_o peradventure_o it_o be_v tolerable_a enough_o for_o they_o to_o suffer_v proscription_n and_o exile_n except_o the_o wicked_a shall_v have_v utter_o kill_v the_o godly_a and_o peradventure_o it_o be_v tolerable_a that_o they_o may_v also_o be_v slay_v except_o the_o world_n shall_v acknowledge_v without_o blush_v that_o they_o do_v wicked_o and_o shall_v open_o confess_v that_o it_o do_v therefore_o kyl_v the_o godly_a because_o they_o believe_v in_o god_n and_o because_o they_o have_v teach_v that_o which_o be_v godly_a but_o the_o world_n be_v so_o far_o from_o confess_v this_o that_o it_o will_v rather_o be_v think_v to_o do_v well_o and_o to_o do_v god_n good_a service_n by_o slay_v the_o godly_a this_o be_v the_o true_a cross_n c._n for_o now_o of_o itself_o it_o be_v a_o very_a hard_a matter_n for_o the_o godly_a to_o be_v cruel_o vex_v but_o it_o be_v much_o more_o sharp_a and_o gréevouse_n that_o the_o injury_n which_o be_v do_v unto_o the_o childeren_n of_o god_n by_o the_o wicked_a shall_v be_v count_v for_o just_a &_o due_a punishment_n belouge_v to_o their_o falte_n but_o we_o must_v be_v so_o strong_a and_o bold_o in_o a_o good_a conscience_n that_o we_o must_v patient_o suffer_v ourselves_o to_o be_v so_o oppress_v till_o christ_n shall_v appear_v from_o heaven_n to_o defend_v our_o and_o his_o cause_n who_o will_v take_v vengeance_n upon_o those_o which_o have_v not_o know_v god_n c._n but_o it_o be_v merueile_v that_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n when_o their_o own_o conscience_n do_v accuse_v they_o can_v bear_v such_o a_o fair_a show_v not_o only_o before_o man_n but_o also_o challenge_v unto_o themselves_o praise_n before_o god_n for_o their_o most_o wicked_a cruelty_n we_o answer_v hypocrite_n although_o their_o own_o conscience_n do_v accuse_v they_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o always_o flatter_v and_o deceive_v themselves_o they_o be_v ambitiouse_a cruel_a and_o proud_a but_o yet_o they_o cover_v all_o these_o vice_n with_o the_o pretence_n of_o zeal_n by_o which_o they_o promise_v unto_o themselves_o impunitye_n to_o this_o also_o be_v join_v a_o sertayne_v furious_a drunkenness_n after_o they_o have_v imbrue_v themselves_o with_o the_o blood_n of_o martyr_n r._n wherefore_o the_o world_n be_v wise_a will_v not_o seem_v to_o do_v evell_a to_o persecute_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n nor_o to_o kill_v the_o true_a euaungeliste_n for_o it_o profess_v that_o it_o love_v and_o honour_v these_o it_o profess_v that_o it_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o it_o say_v that_o it_o will_v not_o bear_v with_o bringer_n in_o of_o new_a thing_n with_o the_o disturber_n of_o the_o peace_n and_o with_o the_o contempner_n of_o human_a and_o divine_a ryghteousnesse_n and_o that_o it_o do_v not_o believe_v their_o word_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o rather_o a_o feign_a imagination_n find_v out_o to_o trouble_v and_o disturb_v all_o religion_n and_o love_n of_o honesty_n and_o thus_o be_v the_o godly_a slay_v of_o the_o world_n as_o the_o author_n of_o all_o evell_a &_o that_o not_o without_o show_n of_o persuasion_n and_o probable_a reasonne_n for_o christ_n also_o himself_o be_v fasten_v to_o the_o cross_n not_o as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o as_o a_o enemy_n unto_o he_o r._n so_o his_o disciple_n be_v think_v unworthy_a to_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n a._n wherefore_o we_o be_v in_o such_o straits_n let_v we_o embrace_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n jesu_n with_o a_o lively_a faith_n let_v we_o in_o patience_n possess_v our_o soul_n 3._o and_o such_o thing_n will_v they_o do_v unto_o you_o because_o they_o have_v not_o know_v the_o father_n neither_o yet_o i_o c._n christ_n do_v not_o in_o vain_a bring_v his_o apostle_n unto_o this_o consideration_n that_o there_o be_v one_o only_a cause_n why_o the_o unbeléeve_a do_v so_o rage_v against_o the_o godly_a namely_o because_o they_o know_v not_o god_n notwithstanding_o this_o be_v not_o speak_v to_o extenuate_v their_o fault_n but_o rather_o that_o the_o apostle_n may_v with_o a_o good_a courage_n despise_v their_o blind_a madness_n r._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v they_o boast_n of_o god_n but_o they_o know_v not_o god_n because_o they_o persecute_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o he_o which_o persecute_v the_o word_n of_o god_n persecute_v god_n himself_o and_o know_v not_o god_n although_o he_o boast_n of_o he_o for_o god_n be_v know_v by_o his_o word_n which_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n c._n moreover_o by_o these_o word_n we_o be_v teach_v what_o great_a wickedness_n the_o ignorance_n of_o god_n be_v which_o make_v they_o
that_o evell_a where_o he_o say_v that_o they_o have_v overcome_v who_o be_v as_o yet_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o skyrmyshe_n but_o our_o condition_n differ_v far_o from_o they_o which_o fight_v under_o the_o standerde_n of_o man_n for_o mars_n to_o they_o be_v doubtful_a and_o the_o success_n of_o the_o battle_n uncertain_a but_o we_o before_o we_o encounter_v with_o the_o enemy_n be_v conqueror_n because_o our_o head_n christ_n have_v once_o overcome_v the_o whole_a world_n for_o we_o when_o he_o overcome_v satan_n the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n so_o that_o he_o may_v peradventure_o afflict_v the_o child_n of_o god_n but_o he_o can_v never_o have_v the_o victory_n for_o that_o the_o cause_n belong_v to_o god_n kingdom_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o world_n in_o this_o place_n christ_n reprehend_v all_o that_o be_v contrary_n to_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o godly_a in_o special_o all_o corruption_n the_o which_o satan_n abuse_v to_o entrap_v and_o beguile_v us._n b._n therefore_o the_o world_n be_v so_o overcome_v by_o christ_n that_o it_o may_v only_o profit_v we_o but_o not_o hurt_v we_o if_o so_o be_v through_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o victory_n of_o the_o world_n we_o cleave_v fast_a unto_o christ_n to_o the_o end_n ❧_o the_o xvij_o chapter_n 1._o these_o word_n speak_v jesus_n and_o lyfte_v up_o his_o eye_n to_o heaven_n and_o say_v father_n the_o hour_n be_v come_v glorifye_v thy_o son_n that_o thy_o son_n also_o may_v glorifye_v thou_o r._n hitherto_o from_o the_o thirtéen_a chapter_n christ_n have_v teach_v that_o he_o be_v send_v of_o the_o father_n into_o this_o world_n and_o that_o he_o will_v go_v to_o the_o father_n again_o beside_o this_o he_o confirm_v with_o many_o comfortable_a consolalation_n all_o those_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o against_o the_o offence_n of_o the_o cross_n special_o with_o the_o last_o comfortable_a precept_n in_o the_o chapter_n go_v before_o be_v of_o good_a cheer_n i_o have_v overcome_v the_o world_n for_o whereunto_o soever_o thou_o have_v respect_n whether_o it_o be_v unto_o corporal_a thing_n or_o spiritual_a thing_n the_o cross_n be_v always_o object_v c._n wherefore_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v promise_v by_o he_o he_o make_v they_o to_o have_v better_a hope_n and_o also_o debate_v the_o matter_n at_o large_a concern_v the_o glory_n and_o excellency_n of_o his_o kingdom_n r._n and_o now_o he_o pray_v his_o father_n first_o that_o his_o father_n will_v glorifye_v he_o see_v that_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v now_o fulfil_v and_o the_o power_n of_o his_o glorifycation_n come_v then_o he_o pray_v for_o his_o apostle_n and_o last_o of_o all_o for_o all_o such_o as_o shall_v believe_v through_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o apostle_n m._n therefore_o christ_n add_v a_o prayer_n to_o that_o doctrine_n by_o the_o which_o he_o instruct_v and_o confirm_v his_o apostle_n and_o such_o a_o prayer_n as_o agree_v with_o the_o present_a cause_n of_o the_o which_o he_o have_v speak_v so_o large_o this_o be_v a_o most_o excellent_a order_n and_o dilligentlye_o to_o be_v observe_v and_o noat_v not_o only_o of_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o of_o the_o faithful_a that_o they_o turn_v from_o doctrine_n to_o prayer_n for_o doctrine_n will_v be_v can_v except_v the_o same_o be_v make_v effectual_a by_o god_n wherefore_o he_o geve_v a_o example_n to_o teacher_n not_o only_o to_o be_v painful_a in_o preach_v the_o word_n but_o also_o by_o use_v prayer_n therewith_o to_o call_v for_o help_v from_o god_n that_o it_o will_v please_v he_o by_o his_o benediction_n to_o make_v the_o same_o fruitful_a m._n for_o whether_o thou_o teach_v or_o be_v teach_v we_o must_v not_o look_v to_o receive_v increase_n and_o fruit_n by_o man_n but_o we_o must_v make_v our_o humble_a prayer_n unto_o god_n who_o geve_v boath_n to_o he_o that_o teach_v and_o to_o he_o that_o hear_v increase_n and_o profit_n c._n to_o be_v short_a this_o prayer_n of_o christ_n 7_z 1_z cor_n 3_o 7_z be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o seal_n of_o the_o former_a doctrine_n boath_n that_o it_o may_v be_v firm_a in_o itself_o and_o also_o that_o the_o disciple_n may_v geve_v credit_n thereunto_o and_o steadfast_o believe_v it_o c._n and_o in_o this_o chapter_n christ_n manife_v his_o priesthood_n of_o who_o it_o be_v write_v thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n also_o 4_o psal_n ii0_n 4_o in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o flesh_n he_o offer_v up_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n with_o strong_a cry_v and_o tear_n unto_o god_n 2_z heb._n 5_o 2_z which_o can_v save_v he_o from_o death_n and_o he_o be_v hear_v out_o of_o the_o fear_n m._n christ_n teach_v before_o now_o he_o pray_v together_o prayer_n &_o preach_v join_v together_o short_o after_o he_o purpose_v to_o offer_v up_o himself_o a_o acceptable_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n his_o father_n c._n and_o whereas_o john_n say_v that_o christ_n pray_v lyft_v up_o his_o eye_n unto_o heaven_n it_o be_v a_o token_n of_o great_a fervency_n in_o prayer_n for_o by_o this_o jesture_n he_o declare_v that_o his_o mind_n and_o affection_n be_v rather_o in_o heaven_n than_o in_o earth_n that_o leave_v man_n he_o may_v have_v familliare_a talk_n with_o god_n also_o he_o look_v uppe_o to_o heaven_n not_o because_o god_n be_v include_v there_o who_o replenish_v the_o whole_a earth_n but_o because_o his_o majesty_n there_o special_o appear_v 27._o jerem._n 27._o but_o concern_v this_o matter_n we_o have_v speak_v more_o in_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n go_v before_o beginning_n at_o the_o forty_o and_o one_o verse_n father_n the_o hour_n be_v come_v m._n in_o that_o christ_n pray_v open_o and_o in_o the_o hear_v of_o his_o disciple_n it_o be_v not_o do_v without_o cause_n he_o love_v silence_n and_o secret_a prayer_n 6.6_o math._n 6.6_o as_o christ_n himself_o not_o only_o in_o word_n but_o also_o by_o his_o own_o deed_n teach_v in_o go_v apart_o when_o he_o will_v pray_v into_o the_o wilderness_n 14.23_o math._n 14.23_o or_o else_o into_o some_o solitary_a place_n but_o that_o kind_a of_o prayer_n which_o the_o lord_n use_v here_o be_v not_o only_o do_v for_o prayer_n sake_n but_o also_o for_o consolation_n and_o instruction_n and_o this_o manner_n of_o open_a prayer_n do_v not_o only_o perfect_a the_o disciple_n but_o have_v also_o bring_v unto_o we_o great_a consolation_n and_o instruction_n c._n first_o of_o all_o christ_n pray_v that_o his_o own_o kingdom_n may_v be_v glorify_v that_o he_o again_o may_v set_v forth_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n he_o say_v the_o hour_n be_v come_v because_o although_o he_o be_v manifest_v by_o miracle_n and_o by_o all_o manner_n of_o power_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n yet_o notwythstand_v as_o yet_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n be_v obscure_a which_o short_o after_o gloriouslye_o shine_v also_o he_o say_v that_o the_o hour_n be_v come_v not_o which_o man_n have_v appoint_v but_o the_o hour_n which_o be_v decree_v by_o god_n r._n but_o some_o will_v say_v what_o mean_v this_o that_o christ_n pray_v be_v assure_v of_o his_o glorification_n i_o answer_v that_o assurance_n be_v the_o principal_a cause_n of_o his_o prayer_n for_o except_o thou_o be_v sure_a &_o certain_a to_o obtain_v thou_o pray_v in_o vain_a faith_n prayer_n if_o it_o be_v effectual_a proceed_v from_o faith_n for_o effectual_a prayer_n must_v spring_v from_o faith_n and_o faith_n be_v dyrect_v to_o the_o firm_a and_o stable_a promise_n of_o god_n wherefore_o except_o faith_n be_v annex_v to_o the_o undoubted_a promise_n it_o can_v be_v that_o thou_o shall_v obtain_v 6.12_o math._n 6.12_o thus_o we_o pray_v daily_o forgive_v we_o our_o dette_n as_o we_o forgive_v our_o debtor_n when_o as_o christ_n purchase_v upon_o the_o cross_a remission_n of_o our_o dette_n many_o year_n before_o c._n therefore_o this_o prayer_n be_v not_o superfluous_a because_o christ_n so_o depend_v upon_o the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o notwythstand_v be_v know_v that_o he_o must_v pray_v for_o that_o which_o be_v promise_v unto_o he_o sertainelye_o to_o come_v to_o pass_v god_n undoubted_o will_v bring_v that_o to_o pass_v which_o he_o have_v decree_v though_o the_o whole_a world_n do_v gaynesaye_v and_o resist_v the_o same_o but_o yet_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v our_o part_n to_o crave_v that_o at_o his_o hand_n by_o prayer_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v because_o this_o be_v the_o use_n of_o promise_n to_o stir_v we_o uppe_o to_o pray_v m._n furthermore_o we_o must_v consider_v that_o he_o say_v not_o god_n glorifye_v i_o but_o father_n glorifye_v thy_o son_n first_o of_o all_o it_o express_v a_o trust_n and_o prerogative_n of_o the_o son_n towards_o the_o father_n than_o it_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o
he_o have_v receive_v of_o his_o father_n hand_n notwithstanding_o this_o may_v seem_v very_o absurd_a for_o there_o can_v be_v a_o better_a rule_n of_o prayer_n devise_v then_o if_o we_o follow_v christ_n our_o captain_n and_o master_n 4_z math._n 5_o 4_z but_o we_o be_v command_v to_o pray_v for_o all_o man_n yea_o even_o for_o our_o enemy_n 1_z i_o tim_n 2_o 1_z also_o the_o apostle_n exhort_v that_o before_o all_o thing_n prayer_n supplication_n intercession_n and_o thanks_n geve_v be_v make_v for_o all_o man_n 34_o luk._n 23_o 34_o c._n furthermore_o christ_n himself_o pray_v after_o this_o indifferent_o for_o all_o man_n say_v father_n forgeve_v they_o for_o they_o wot_v not_o what_o they_o do_v m._n moreover_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o a_o mediatoure_n not_o only_o to_o pray_v but_o also_o to_o offer_v and_o he_o offer_v himself_o upon_o the_o cross_n for_o all_o man_n 15_z 2_z cor._n 5_o 15_z for_o as_o say_v paul_n christ_n die_v for_o all_o man_n final_o saint_n john_n say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whoal_n world_n 2_z i_o john_n 2_o 2_z how_o then_o say_v he_o that_o he_o pray_v not_o for_o the_o world_n see_v he_o die_v for_o all_o man_n question_v and_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whoale_n world_n c._n this_o may_v be_v bréef_o answer_v that_o these_o prayer_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v make_v for_o all_o man_n be_v notwithstanding_o restrain_v to_o the_o elect_v of_o god_n answer_v answer_v we_o ought_v to_o wish_v this_o and_o that_o man_n to_o be_v save_v and_o so_o to_o comprehend_v all_o mankind_n because_o as_o yet_o we_o can_v distinguish_v the_o elect_a from_o the_o reprobate_n yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o pray_v therewithal_o for_o the_o come_n of_o god_n kingdom_n wish_v that_o he_o will_v destroy_v his_o enemy_n this_o be_v even_o as_o much_o as_o to_o pray_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o man_n who_o we_o know_v to_o be_v create_v after_o the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o which_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n that_o we_o be_v of_o and_o do_v leave_v their_o destruction_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n who_o he_o know_v to_o be_v reprobate_n there_o be_v another_o sertayne_v special_a cause_n of_o this_o prayer_n which_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v draw_v into_o example_n for_o christ_n prayer_n proceed_v not_o only_o from_o the_o bare_a scence_n of_o faith_n and_o love_n but_o also_o from_o the_o feel_v of_o his_o father_n secret_a judgemente_n which_o be_v hide_v from_o we_o so_o long_o as_o we_o walk_v through_o faith_n m._n therefore_o because_o we_o know_v not_o who_o they_o be_v which_o so_o appertain_v unto_o the_o world_n that_o they_o can_v never_o be_v draw_v away_o from_o the_o same_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o we_o wish_v well_o unto_o all_o man_n and_o to_o declare_v our_o good_a will_n by_o prayer_n c._n furthermore_o by_o these_o word_n we_o gather_v that_o they_o who_o it_o please_v god_n to_o love_v out_o of_o this_o world_n shall_v be_v heir_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o that_o this_o difference_n depend_v not_o upon_o man_n merit_n but_o upon_o the_o mere_a good_a will_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n for_o the_o which_o place_n the_o cause_n of_o election_n in_o man_n must_v first_o begin_v with_o faith_n christ_n plain_o pronounce_v that_o they_o be_v the_o father_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o and_o it_o be_v sertayne_v that_o they_o be_v therefore_o give_v that_o they_o may_v believe_v and_o that_o faith_n come_v of_o this_o donation_n if_o so_o be_v this_o donation_n be_v the_o original_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o election_n go_v before_o the_o same_o what_o else_o can_v follow_v but_o that_o we_o confess_v that_o they_o be_v free_o choose_v who_o god_n will_v have_v to_o be_v save_v from_o among_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n now_o see_v christ_n pray_v only_o for_o the_o elect_a the_o faith_n of_o election_n be_v necessary_a for_o we_o if_o so_o be_v we_o will_v have_v our_o salvation_n commend_v to_o he_o of_o the_o father_n therefore_o they_o do_v great_a injury_n to_o the_o faithful_a which_o seek_v to_o race_n out_o of_o their_o mind_n the_o knoweledg_n of_o their_o election_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v deprive_v they_o of_o the_o help_n of_o christ_n they_z also_o be_v here_o reproove_v which_o under_o the_o pretence_n of_o their_o election_n geve_v themselves_o to_o all_o licentiousenesse_n of_o life_n and_o to_o negligence_n and_o slew_v in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n whenas_o the_o same_o ought_v rather_o to_o move_v they_o to_o all_o godliness_n evenas_a christ_n teach_v by_o his_o example_n furthermore_o whereas_o christ_n pray_v not_o for_o the_o world_n but_o only_o for_o the_o elect_v it_o bring_v great_a horror_n and_o fear_n for_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o world_n run_v headlong_o to_o all_o kind_n of_o wickedness_n to_o death_n to_o hell_n and_o into_o everlasting_a condemnation_n for_o only_o the_o unbeléevinge_v for_o who_o christ_n pray_v overcome_v in_o christ_n through_o prayer_n all_o the_o evelles_fw-la of_o the_o world_n and_o of_o the_o devil_n but_o the_o world_n by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n be_v give_v over_o into_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n and_o be_v leave_v unto_o his_o own_o will_n and_o pleasure_n wherefore_o as_o it_o live_v wicked_o so_o by_o the_o horrible_a judgement_n of_o god_n it_o be_v condemn_v m._n here_o also_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o love_v these_o hearty_o who_o we_o know_v to_o belong_v unto_o christ_n and_o to_o the_o father_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n to_o make_v our_o earnest_a prayer_n unto_o god_n for_o they_o 10._o and_o all_o mine_n be_v thou_o and_o thou_o be_v i_o and_o i_o be_o glorify_v in_o they_o r._n this_o be_v a_o confyrmation_n of_o christ_n prayer_n for_o christ_n obtain_v that_o at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o father_n which_o he_o pray_v for_o because_o all_o thing_n belong_v to_o the_o father_n be_v he_o the_o which_o he_o will_v not_o have_v say_v if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v the_o son_n equal_a with_o the_o father_n m._n to_o the_o father_n béelonge_v the_o sempiternal_a divinity_n wisdom_n power_n goodness_n all_o honour_n and_o glory_n heaven_n earth_n and_o all_o thing_n in_o they_o angel_n man_n and_o whatsoever_o else_o therefore_o all_o these_o thing_n also_o belong_v unto_o christ_n who_o the_o father_n have_v make_v heir_n of_o all_o thing_n c._n christ_n therefore_o speak_v this_o to_o show_v that_o he_o shall_v sertain_o be_v hear_v of_o the_o father_n 2._o hebr._n i_o 2._o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o commend_v no_o other_o unto_o thou_o than_o those_o who_o thou_o know_v to_o be_v thy_o own_o because_o i_o have_v nothing_o which_o thou_o haste_v not_o therefore_o i_o will_v not_o be_v deny_v r._n notwithstanding_o he_o seem_v hear_v to_o speak_v spetial_o of_o the_o elect_v these_o thing_n be_v so_o common_a unto_o the_o father_n and_o to_o christ_n that_o christ_n take_v none_o to_o be_v save_v but_o those_o who_o the_o father_n have_v elect_v for_o the_o same_o purpose_n and_o all_o those_o who_o god_n have_v elect_v those_o christ_n take_v into_o his_o charge_n and_o save_v when_o he_o add_v and_o i_o be_o glorify_v in_o they_o he_o show_v that_o he_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o have_v care_n for_o the_o elect_v and_o to_o seek_v their_o salvation_n see_v they_o seek_v whole_o to_o set_v forth_o his_o glory_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o be_o now_o go_v out_o of_o the_o world_n these_o shall_v abide_v in_o the_o world_n and_o shall_v glorify_v i_o that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o shall_v preach_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n my_o victory_n and_o triumph_n over_o sin_n death_n and_o hell_n c._n and_o this_o be_v a_o notable_a confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o christ_n will_v neaver_o cease_v to_o have_v care_n for_o our_o salvation_n if_o so_o be_v he_o be_v gloryfy_v and_o to_o glorify_v christ_n be_v first_o of_o all_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o as_o in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n second_o for_o his_o sake_n to_o do_v and_o suffer_v all_o thing_n three_o to_o seek_v diligent_o to_o bring_v all_o man_n to_o believe_v in_o he_o to_o profess_v his_o name_n and_o to_o embrace_v his_o truth_n and_o fourthly_a to_o express_v his_o spirit_n in_o all_o thing_n by_o the_o exercise_n of_o true_a godliness_n all_o which_o thing_n be_v look_v for_o at_o their_o hand_n which_o be_v give_v to_o christ_n of_o the_o father_n 11._o and_o now_o be_o i_o not_o in_o the_o world_n and_o they_o be_v in_o the_o woorlde_n and_o i_o come_v too_o thou_o holy_a father_n keep_v through_o thy_o own_o name_n they_o which_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o that_o they_o may_v also_o be_v one_o as_o we_o be_v c._n now_o
haste_v love_v i_o for_o there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a christ_n which_o can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v well-beloved_a furthermore_o the_o heavenly_a father_n love_v all_o the_o member_n with_o the_o same_o love_n with_o the_o which_o he_o have_v love_v the_o church_n that_o he_o may_v love_v no_o man_n but_o in_o christ_n but_o for_o this_o read_v more_o in_o the_o .3.14_o and_o .16_o chapter_n before_o 24._o father_n i_o will_v that_o they_o which_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o be_v with_o i_o where_o i_o be_o that_o they_o may_v see_v my_o glory_n which_o for_o thou_o haste_v give_v i_o thou_o love_v i_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n m._n whereas_o christ_n say_v here_o to_o his_o father_n i_o will_v it_o be_v not_o speak_v commaund_o but_o in_o the_o way_n of_o petition_n c._n for_o i_o will_v in_o this_o place_n be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o i_o desire_v notwithstanding_o there_o may_v be_v double_a understanding_n in_o the_o same_o either_o that_o he_o will_v have_v his_o disciple_n to_o enjoy_v his_o external_a presence_n or_o else_o that_o god_n will_v bring_v they_o at_o the_o last_o into_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n whither_o he_o go_v before_o thus_o to_o see_v the_o glory_n some_o expound_v to_o have_v the_o participation_n of_o that_o glory_n which_o christ_n have_v other_o some_o to_o feel_v with_o the_o sense_n of_o faith_n what_o christ_n be_v &_o how_o great_a his_o majesty_n be_v also_o but_o all_o thing_n well_o weigh_v &_o consider_v we_o must_v believe_v that_o christ_n speak_v of_o the_o perfect_v blessedness_n of_o the_o godly_a as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o his_o prayer_n and_o petition_n be_v not_o grant_v until_o such_o time_n as_o they_o be_v receive_v up_o into_o heaven_n unto_o he_o thus_o we_o must_v understand_v the_o sight_n of_o his_o glory_n they_z then_o see_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n when_o he_o be_v present_a with_o they_o even_o as_o if_o man_n shall_v see_v a_o small_a light_n shine_v through_o the_o narrow_a chink_n or_o crack_n of_o a_o ●oore_a or_o wall_n when_o they_o be_v shut_v into_o a_o dark_a place_n now_o christ_n wishet_n that_o they_o may_v profit_v so_o long_o until_o they_o enjoy_v the_o perfect_v light_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n in_o effect_n he_o pray_v that_o the_o father_n will_v bring_v they_o forward_o more_o &_o more_o until_o such_o time_n as_o he_o bring_v they_o unto_o the_o full_a sight_n of_o his_o glory_n m._n by_o this_o place_n we_o see_v what_o manner_n of_o prayer_n it_o be_v which_o christ_n make_v namely_o no_o uncertain_a or_o doubtful_a prayer_n but_o a_o assure_a and_o faithful_a prayer_n too_o obtain_v that_o which_o he_o ask_v c._n when_o he_o add_v for_o thou_o love_v i_o before_o the_o beeginning_n it_o do_v far_o better_o agree_v with_o the_o person_n of_o the_o mediator_n than_o with_o the_o bare_a devinitie_n of_o christ_n a._n by_o this_o place_n we_o gather_v that_o the_o faithful_a be_v out_o of_o peril_n see_v they_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o same_o glory_n with_o the_o which_o christ_n be_v endue_v of_o the_o father_n for_o the_o head_n be_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o member_n r._n therefore_o whether_o the_o faithful_a be_v in_o death_n or_o in_o life_n they_o be_v with_o christ_n whereupon_o the_o prophet_n say_v if_o i_o walk_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n i_o will_v fear_v none_o ill_o because_o thou_o be_v with_o i_o 25._o o_o righteous_a father_n the_o world_n also_o have_v not_o know_v thou_o but_o i_o have_v know_v thou_o and_o these_o have_v know_v that_o thou_o haste_v send_v i_o m._n again_o he_o commend_v in_o his_o disciple_n the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n the_o father_n the_o which_o he_o manifest_v unto_o they_o of_o this_o he_o speak_v before_o and_o here_o he_o repeat_v the_o same_o again_o discern_v his_o disciple_n from_o this_o world_n and_o accuse_v the_o world_n in_o this_o that_o the_o same_o know_v not_o god_n the_o father_n c._n therefore_o of_o right_n christ_n of_o a_o singular_a affection_n commend_v his_o disciple_n who_o the_o unbelief_n of_o the_o world_n do_v not_o hinder_v from_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n m._n the_o like_a sentence_n almost_o thou_o haste_v before_o in_o these_o word_n and_o you_o have_v not_o know_v he_o but_o i_o have_v know_v he_o also_o it_o agree_v with_o the_o .8_o verse_n of_o this_o chapter_n c._n in_o call_v the_o father_n righteous_a he_o condemn_v the_o world_n and_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o same_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v although_o the_o world_n do_v proud_o despise_v and_o reject_v god_n yet_o not_o withstand_v he_o lose_v nothing_o thereby_o but_o remain_v still_o as_o glorious_a a_o god_n and_o a_o righteous_a as_o he_o be_v before_o by_o which_o word_n he_o teach_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o godly_a aught_o to_o be_v so_o found_v in_o god_n that_o though_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v fall_v yet_o the_o same_o shall_v never_o shake_v also_o we_o must_v note_v the_o order_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v here_o describe_v the_o son_n only_o which_o come_v forth_o of_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n do_v proper_o know_v the_o father_n therefore_o all_o they_o which_o desire_v to_o come_v unto_o god_n must_v of_o necessity_n receive_v christ_n which_o come_v to_o meet_v they_o and_o must_v whole_o addicte_n themselves_o unto_o he_o and_o he_o when_o he_o be_v know_v will_v at_o the_o last_o bring_v his_o disciple_n to_o god_n the_o father_n 26._o and_o i_o have_v declare_v unto_o they_o thy_o name_n and_o will_v declare_v it_o that_o the_o love_n wherewith_o thou_o haste_v love_v i_o may_v be_v in_o they_o and_o i_o in_o they_o m._n by_o this_o place_n it_o do_v appear_v that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n name_n be_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o dispensation_n and_o mediation_n of_o christ_n by_o which_o he_o be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o mediator_n send_v into_o this_o world_n c._n when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v manifest_v unto_o they_o his_o father_n name_n he_o mean_v that_o he_o have_v do_v the_o office_n of_o a_o teacher_n but_o yet_o that_o he_o use_v not_o only_o the_o sound_n of_o a_o voice_n but_o also_o the_o secret_a revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o manifest_v the_o father_n and_o because_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o disciple_n be_v as_o yet_o but_o weak_a he_o promise_v with_o all_o increase_v of_o this_o knowledge_n b._n for_o we_o must_v here_o continual_o increase_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n c._n and_o thus_o he_o prepare_v they_o to_o hope_v for_o more_o large_a knowledge_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n also_o although_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o apostle_n yet_o we_o may_v gather_v thereby_o a_o general_a exhortation_n that_o we_o may_v study_v daily_o to_o profit_n and_o not_o to_o think_v that_o we_o have_v run_v so_o well_o but_o that_o there_o remain_v yet_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o our_o race_n so_o long_o as_o we_o be_v in_o this_o flesh_n m._n wherefore_o let_v we_o seek_v for_o the_o increase_n of_o this_o knowledge_n of_o god_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o christ_n the_o perfection_n whereof_o we_o shall_v have_v at_o the_o last_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v that_o the_o love_n wherewith_o thou_o have_v love_v i_o c._n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o thou_o may_v love_v they_o in_o i_o or_o else_o that_o the_o love_n wherewith_o thou_o have_v love_v i_o may_v also_o extend_v itself_o unto_o they_o for_o the_o love_n wherewith_o god_n love_v we_o too_o speak_v proper_o be_v even_o the_o very_a same_o with_o the_o which_o he_o love_v his_o son_n from_o the_o beeginning_n that_o in_o he_o he_o may_v make_v we_o acceptable_a to_o himself_o and_o very_o in_o respect_n of_o ourselves_o we_o be_v odious_a unto_o god_n without_o christ_n but_o they_o he_o begin_v to_o love_v we_o when_o we_o begin_v to_o grow_v into_o the_o body_n of_o his_o welbeeloved_a son_n this_o be_v a_o unspeakable_a privilege_n when_o we_o know_v that_o chryste_n be_v belove_v of_o his_o father_n for_o our_o sake_n that_o we_o may_v be_v for_o ever_o partaker_n of_o the_o same_o love_n m._n we_o must_v note_v also_o that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n do_v bring_v we_o into_o this_o wonderful_a fellowship_n of_o god_n love_n c._n but_o we_o must_v note_v these_o word_n and_o i_o in_o they_o by_o which_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o we_o be_v no_o otherwise_o comprehend_v in_o that_o love_n of_o the_o which_o he_o speak_v than_o if_o christ_n do_v dwell_v in_o us._n for_o as_o the_o father_n can_v not_o behold_v the_o son_n but_o he_o must_v have_v before_o his_o eye_n his_o whole_a body_n even_o so_o if_o we_o will_v have_v he_o to_o behold_v we_o
enjoin_v to_o bear_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v it_o make_v no_o matter_n unto_o thou_o neither_o haste_n thou_o any_o thing_n to_o do_v to_o demand_v what_o shall_v become_v of_o thy_o fellow_n leave_v this_o to_o my_o will_n only_o consider_v of_o thyself_o and_o prepare_v thyself_o to_o follow_v whither_o soever_o thou_o be_v call_v r._n have_v regard_n to_o thy_o own_o call_n and_o not_o to_o a_o other_o man_n i_o will_v have_v a_o regard_n to_o other_o myself_o if_o he_o abide_v and_o suffer_v no_o cruel_a death_n he_o abide_v to_o i_o bu_n yea_o if_o it_o be_v my_o will_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o dye_v but_o to_o abide_v in_o the_o state_n he_o be_v in_o now_o until_o i_o come_v to_o judgement_n and_o that_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v good_a for_o he_o what_o have_v thou_o to_o do_v with_o it_o i_o will_v have_v thou_o nor_o no_o man_n else_o curious_o to_o search_v out_o god_n counsel_n or_o to_o discuss_v other_o man_n calling_n john_n be_v i_o and_o i_o will_v use_v he_o at_o my_o pleasure_n therefore_o that_o which_o i_o say_v even_o now_o i_o say_v again_o 9.62_o luke_n 9.62_o no_o man_n put_v his_o hand_n to_o they_o plough_n and_o look_v back_o be_v meet_v for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n r._n i_o will_v to_o god_n that_o this_o sentence_n be_v imprint_v in_o all_o man_n mind_n that_o every_o one_o may_v learn_v to_o have_v his_o duty_n in_o remembrance_n for_o what_o be_v thou_o say_v the_o apostle_n which_o iudge_v another_o man_n servant_n 14.4_o rom._n 14.4_o to_o his_o own_o master_n he_o stand_v or_o fall_v m._n notwithstanding_o we_o must_v here_o distinguish_v between_o that_o care_n which_o procee_v of_o curiosity_n curiosity_n care_n procee_v of_o love_n and_o of_o curiosity_n &_o that_o which_o procee_v of_o love_n c._n for_o all_o care_n for_o our_o brethren_n be_v not_o superfluous_a if_o it_o observe_v a_o mean_a then_o be_v it_o not_o curiosity_n but_o a_o good_a care_n m._n this_o be_v curiosity_n to_o search_v and_o seek_v how_o long_o this_o or_o that_o man_n shall_v live_v and_o whether_o he_o shall_v be_v scotfree_a or_o poor_a the_o which_o many_o do_v by_o curious_a art_n rather_o than_o attend_v and_o regard_v christian_n charity_n let_v we_o say_v if_o so_o be_v god_n will_v have_v this_o prince_n or_o that_o tyrant_n to_o rain_v until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n what_o be_v it_o to_o we_o let_v we_o follow_v christ_n our_o captain_n c._n to_o be_v short_a let_v every_o one_o of_o we_o have_v respect_n unto_o our_o neighbour_n to_o see_v if_o we_o can_v draw_v they_o unto_o christ_n rather_o than_o by_o their_o offence_n to_o do_v evel_a ourselves_o until_o i_o come_v 1.11_o math._n 25.31_o act._n 1.11_o m._n therefore_o he_o geve_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o he_o will_v come_v again_o into_o this_o world_n the_o which_o also_o in_o other_o place_n be_v more_o plain_o affirm_v 23._o then_o go_v this_o say_n abroad_o among_o the_o brethren_n that_o the_o same_o disciple_n shall_v not_o dye_v etc._n etc._n c._n the_o evangelist_n declare_v that_o a_o error_n spring_v up_o among_o the_o disciple_n by_o mistake_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n that_o john_n shall_v never_o dye_v m._n the_o evangelist_n therefore_o think_v good_a to_o interpret_v true_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n not_o understand_v but_o rash_o take_v lest_o when_o he_o himself_o be_v dead_a any_o note_n of_o untruth_n may_v with_o offence_n be_v ascribe_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n among_o the_o brethren_n c._n he_o mean_v these_o apostle_n which_o be_v present_a at_o that_o say_n not_o that_o the_o name_n of_o brethren_n appertayneeh_a to_o they_o alone_o bu_n for_o all_o christian_n be_v call_v brethren_n but_o because_o they_o be_v the_o sanctify_v first_o fruit_n of_o unity_n it_o may_v also_o be_v that_o other_o beside_o the_o eleven_o which_o be_v present_a be_v note_v bu_n hereby_o we_o gather_v how_o apt_a and_o ready_a man_n be_v to_o err_v for_o if_o so_o be_v those_o man_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o first_o pillar_n of_o the_o church_n stumble_v at_o such_o a_o straw_n what_o will_v we_o do_v which_o have_v such_o great_a stomble_a block_n lay_v in_o our_o way_n c._o howbeit_o it_o be_v like_o that_o this_o error_n continue_v no_o long_o among_o they_o than_o until_o they_o be_v replenish_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bu_n error_n spring_v of_o diverse_a cause_n cause_n error_n spring_v of_o diverse_a cause_n but_o special_o of_o these_o two_o that_o be_v to_o say_v either_o of_o our_o affection_n which_o judge_v not_o right_o of_o the_o eternal_a majesty_n of_o god_n or_o else_o by_o some_o small_a wrest_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n of_o wrong_a affection_n towards_o jesus_n thus_o the_o disciple_n gather_v jesus_n love_v john_n therefore_o john_n shall_v not_o dye_v for_o those_o who_o human_a affection_n love_v it_o wish_v to_o live_v for_o ever_o to_o the_o wrest_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o appertain_v because_o they_o absolute_o pronounce_v that_o john_n shall_v abide_v in_o his_o present_a state_n until_o christ_n come_v again_o whereas_o he_o speak_v conditional_o if_o i_o will_v have_v he_o tarry_v till_o i_o come_v what_o be_v that_o to_o thou_o c._n thus_o very_o profitable_o christ_n teach_v we_o to_o our_o edification_n and_o that_o also_o very_o plain_o but_o we_o by_o our_o corrupt_a and_o wicked_a imagination_n do_v obscure_a &_o darken_v the_o light_n christ_n will_v not_o pronounce_v any_o thing_n certain_a concern_v john_n but_o only_o approve_v that_o he_o have_v full_a power_n of_o life_n and_o death_n so_o that_o of_o itself_o it_o be_v a_o simple_a and_o profitable_a doctrine_n but_o the_o disciple_n devise_v and_o imagine_v more_o than_o be_v speak_v wherefore_o that_o we_o may_v be_v safe_a from_o the_o same_o peril_n let_v we_o learn_v soberlye_o to_o conceyve_v that_o which_o be_v speak_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n m._n also_o by_o the_o present_a care_n of_o the_o evangelist_n we_o be_v teach_v how_o circumspect_a we_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o read_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n the_o which_o one_o letter_n be_v add_v or_o take_v away_o or_o change_v may_v be_v so_o pervert_v that_o they_o will_v not_o testefye_v a_o truth_n but_o a_o lie_n and_o will_v serve_v to_o maintain_v contention_n special_o see_v it_o be_v a_o very_a hard_a matter_n to_o take_v away_o quite_o out_o of_o man_n mind_n a_o error_n once_o conceyve_v if_o so_o be_v it_o have_v any_o show_n of_o authority_n from_o christ_n the_o which_o happen_v in_o this_o cause_n concern_v the_o death_n of_o john_n for_o such_o be_v the_o wickedness_n of_o man_n nature_n that_o it_o rush_v headlong_o into_o all_o vanity_n whereupon_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o this_o error_n also_o of_o the_o which_o the_o evangelist_n have_v warn_v we_o to_o take_v heed_n be_v yet_o in_o the_o world_n for_o there_o want_v not_o some_o which_o deny_v that_o he_o be_v dead_a m._n but_o have_v feign_v that_o when_o he_o have_v command_v his_o sepulchre_n to_o be_v dig_v and_o be_v put_v into_o the_o same_o the_o next_o day_n after_o it_o be_v find_v empty_a john_n be_v carry_v alive_a corporallye_o into_o paradise_n to_o enoch_n and_o elias_n who_o shall_v come_v at_o the_o latter_a day_n to_o war_n against_o antechrist_n c._n wherefore_o we_o see_v that_o there_o be_v no_o end_n of_o err_a except_o we_o simple_o embrace_v that_o which_o the_o lord_n have_v deliver_v &_o reject_v all_o other_o imagination_n comment_n and_o surmise_n bu_n these_o thing_n teach_v we_o not_o to_o trust_v to_o much_o to_o our_o own_o wisdom_n lest_o we_o light_o &_o necligent_o handle_v the_o scripture_n but_o rather_o let_v we_o read_v they_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o with_o often_o prayer_n know_v that_o we_o be_v full_a of_o error_n &_o darkness_n but_o do_v receive_v the_o true_a &_o perfect_v illumination_n from_o above_o 24._o the_o same_o discyple_a be_v he_o which_o testefi_v of_o these_o thing_n &_o write_v these_o thing_n and_o we_o know_v that_o his_o testymonye_n be_v true_a bu_n this_o be_v the_o conclusion_n &_o appendix_n of_o this_o divine_a history_n by_o which_o saint_n john_n happy_o knit_v up_o the_o work_n c._n and_o because_o hitherto_o he_o have_v make_v mention_n of_o himself_o under_o the_o three_o person_z he_o now_o express_v that_o he_o be_v even_o the_o very_a same_o to_o the_o end_n he_o be_v a_o eye_n witness_n and_o one_o that_o speak_v by_o experience_n may_v bring_v more_o weight_n &_o authority_n to_o his_o word_n bu_n there_o be_v great_a modesty_n to_o be_v follow_v in_o his_o word_n for_o he_o neither_o speak_v nor_o write_v any_o thing_n of_o himself_o arrogant_o or_o bold_o he_o